by_o the_o canon_n of_o 1571._o and_o 1603._o to_o set_v in_o order_n and_o provide_v such_o book_n ornament_n and_o necessary_n as_o be_v want_v in_o parish_n church_n and_o see_v they_o well_o repair_v ergo_fw-la churchwarden_n be_v bishop_n for_o titus_n be_v here_o leave_v to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v as_o paul_n have_v appoint_v he_o and_o no_o other_o wise_a tit._n 1._o 5._o 6._o 7._o 8._o 9_o he_o do_v all_o by_o his_o direction_n and_o authority_n not_o his_o own_o there_o be_v nothing_o therefore_o in_o this_o of_o order_v thing_n that_o be_v want_v in_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n which_o savour_v of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o i_o may_v better_o argue_v hence_o titus_n do_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o crect_n but_o by_o paul_n special_a appointment_n and_o commission_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v no_o bishop_n or_o if_o a_o bishop_n ergo_fw-la bishop_n shall_v order_v nothing_o in_o their_o bishoprike_n nor_o keep_v any_o visitation_n but_o by_o special_a direction_n &_o commission_n from_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n king_n or_o state_n authorise_v they_o then_o the_o objector_n conclude_v ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n archbishop_n yea_o archdeacon_n too_o without_o any_o special_a commission_n from_o the_o apostle_n king_n and_o state_n may_v make_v and_o institute_v what_o order_n constitution_n article_n and_o ceremony_n they_o please_v as_o now_o they_o do_v in_o their_o illegal_a court_n and_o visitation_n keep_v in_o their_o own_o name_n without_o any_o patent_n from_o the_o king_n obj._n 3_o if_o any_o object_n in_o the_o three_o place_n that_o titus_n be_v lest_o to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n in_o crete_n tit._n 1._o 5._o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o bishop_n because_o none_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v elder_n but_o bishop_n since_o none_o ordain_v elder_n in_o crete_n but_o titus_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 3._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o be_v as_o bad_a a_o consequence_n as_o the_o former_a and_o a_o mere_a circular_a argumentation_n for_o first_o they_o will_v needs_o prove_v titus_n a_o bishop_n because_o he_o ordain_v elder_n and_o none_o but_o bishop_n can_v ordain_v elder_n and_o then_o next_o they_o prove_v that_o none_o but_o bishop_n can_v ordain_v because_o titus_n forsooth_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o he_o only_o do_v ordain_v elder_n in_o crete_n a_o mere_a circle_n and_o petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la yet_o this_o be_v the_o logic_n of_o our_o great_a rabbi_n prelate_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o proposition_n whereon_o they_o ground_n themselves_o and_o their_o prelacy_n that_o none_o have_v any_o right_a ture_n divino_fw-la to_o ordain_v elder_n or_o minister_n but_o bishop_n and_o that_o quatenus_fw-la bishop_n too_o which_o they_o must_v add_v or_o else_o their_o argument_n be_v unsound_a be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o mere_a sandy_a foundation_n for_o first_o not_o to_o remember_v how_o moses_n a_o civil_a magistrate_n consecrate_a aaron_n and_o his_o son_n by_o god_n own_o appointement_n levit._fw-la 8._o 5._o to_o 32._o exod._n 29._o 9_o 35._o first_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v ordain_v apostle_n and_o consecrate_a minister_n by_o christ_n himself_o matth._n 28._o 19_o 20._o mark_v 16._o 15._o 16._o john_n 20._o 22._o 23._o 24._o acts._n 1._o 4._o 5._o rom._n 1._o 5._o 2._o cor._n 3._o 6._o to_o who_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n principal_o appertain_v ephes_n 4._o 11._o 12._o 1._o cor._n 12._o 28._o acts._n 20._o 28._o 1._o pet._n 1._o 4._o second_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n acts._n 14._o 23._o c._n 19_o 1._o 6._o 7._o c._n 7._o 6._o yet_o they_o be_v proper_o no_o bishop_n as_o 1465._o all_o learned_a man_n acknowledge_v three_o the_o disciple_n inferior_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n as_o the_o objector_n teach_v ordain_v minister_n and_o elder_n too_o though_o they_o be_v no_o such_o bishop_n as_o the_o objector_n mean_v acts._n 14._o 1._o 2._o 3._o c._n 9_o 10._o to_o 22._o four_o 3._o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n ordainea_fw-la elder_n and_o minister_n yea_o timothy_n himself_o be_v make_v a_o minister_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o thus_o do_v they_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o do_v they_o still_o in_o our_o own_o church_n as_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n itself_o confirm_v by_o 1._o two_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o 35._o canon_n and_o experience_n witness_v this_o do_v they_o in_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n now_o which_o shall_v have_v no_o lawful_a minister_n and_o so_o no_o true_a church_n if_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la appropriate_v only_o to_o bishop_n and_o not_o common_a with_o they_o unto_o other_o minister_n five_o patriarch_n metropolitan_n archbishop_n and_o choral_a bishop_n neither_o of_o which_o be_v proper_o bishop_n in_o the_o objector_n sense_n ordain_v minister_n if_o then_o all_o these_o have_v ordain_v elder_n and_o minister_n though_o no_o bishop_n by_o sufficient_a divine_a authority_n as_o the_o objector_n can_v deny_v of_o the_o 4._o first_o and_o dare_v not_o contradict_v it_o in_o the_o last_o than_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la belong_v only_a to_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n in_o the_o objector_n sense_n for_o than_o none_o of_o those_o 5._o being_n not_o proper_o such_o bishop_n can_v lawful_o have_v ordain_v minister_n or_o presbyter_n as_o they_o do_v and_o do_v three_o there_o be_v no_o one_o syllable_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n quatenus_fw-la bishop_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o one_o example_n to_o warrant_v it_o we_o read_v of_o apostle_n evangelist_n disciple_n presbyter_n that_o lay_v hand_n on_o other_o to_o ordain_v they_o minister_n but_o of_o bishop_n i_o mean_v distinct_a from_o presbyter_n we_o read_v not_o a_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n how_o then_o can_v this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n quatenus_fw-la bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la four_o we_o read_v not_o a_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o scripture_n of_o any_o bishop_n distinct_a from_o or_o superior_a in_o order_n degree_n and_o dignity_n to_o presbyter_n if_o therefore_o such_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o power_n of_o ordination_n can_v belong_v to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la the_o rather_o because_o we_o read_v of_o no_o man_n who_o the_o scripture_n call_v a_o bishop_n ordain_v minister_n admit_v there_o be_v such_o bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la yet_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la quatenus_fw-la such_o bishop_n be_v most_o false_a but_o only_o quatenus_fw-la they_o be_v minister_n for_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o evangelist_n to_o disciple_n and_o presbyter_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la though_o no_o such_o bishop_n and_o the_o objector_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o pope_n patriarch_n metropolitan_o and_o archbishop_n though_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o be_v proper_o such_o bishop_n and_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o mere_a humane_a institution_n therefore_o it_o must_v appertain_v unto_o they_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o all_o accord_n and_o be_v not_o difference_v one_o from_o another_o not_o quatenus_fw-la bishop_n for_o then_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n disciple_n presbyter_n pope_n patriarch_n metropolitan_n and_o archbishop_n be_v not_o proper_o such_o bishop_n can_v not_o lawful_o ordain_v the_o power_n therefore_o of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n disciple_n presbyter_n and_o other_o as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o bishop_n only_o or_o to_o they_o as_o bishop_n but_o as_o minister_n it_o be_v a_o 367._o mere_a ministerial_a act_n inferior_a to_o preach_v administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o baptise_v as_o all_o acknowledge_v it_o can_v be_v no_o good_a evidence_n to_o prove_v titus_n a_o bishop_n now_o because_o this_o power_n of_o ordination_n which_o our_o prelate_n will_v monopolise_v unto_o themselves_o be_v the_o main_a pillar_n whereon_o they_o now_o suspend_v their_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n over_o their_o minister_n i_o shall_v produce_v some_o humane_a authority_n to_o prove_v the_o right_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o be_v by_o god_n law_n common_a to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n i_o shall_v begin_v with_o counsel_n the_o 4._o 513._o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 418._o prescribe_v this_o form_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n when_o a_o minister_n be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n blessing_n he_o and_o hold_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n all_o the_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n likewise_o that_o
of_o such_o who_o have_v apostolical_a authority_n or_o of_o bishop_n and_o not_o of_o the_o bare_a presbyter_n because_o say_v they_o presbyter_n to_o wit_n according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o though_o not_o of_o former_a time_n can_v not_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n but_o only_a apostle_n or_o bishop_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o so_o much_o as_o once_o asffirme_v that_o they_o can_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n ordain_v deacon_n &_o ordinary_a minister_n or_o that_o they_o ought_v by_o god_n law_n and_o divine_a institution_n to_o be_v ordain_v only_o by_o bishop_n yea_o 14._o theophilact_fw-mi on_o that_o text_n write_v thus_o behold_v a_o wonderful_a thing_n see_v how_o much_o the_o imposition_n sacerdotalium_fw-la manwm_fw-la of_o sacerdotal_a or_o priest_n hand_n can_v do_v a_o clear_a demonstration_n that_o priest_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n only_o as_o they_o be_v priest_n not_o bishop_n have_v power_n of_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o 14._o theodoret_n thus_o gloss_v the_o text_n here_o he_o call_v those_o the_o presbytery_n who_o have_v attain_v apostolical_a grace_n for_o say_v he_o divine_a scripture_n have_v call_v those_o who_o be_v honour_v in_o israel_n elder_n the_o father_n therefore_o confess_v that_o presbyter_n and_o elder_n may_v and_o do_v in_o some_o case_n and_o place_n ordain_v and_o consecrate_v minister_n without_o the_o bishop_n and_o likewise_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o all_o place_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n grant_v that_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n and_o impose_v hand_n belong_v to_o they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n the_o rather_o because_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o 28._o father_n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n and_o institution_n be_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o so_o continue_v till_o long_a after_o the_o apostle_n time_n therefore_o their_o power_n of_o ordination_n the_o same_o with_o they_o neither_o do_v the_o papist_n dissent_v from_o this_o 3_o aquinas_n write_v that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v double_a one_o which_o be_v make_v by_o deacon_n the_o other_o by_o minister_n and_o because_o he_o add_v not_o the_o three_o by_o bishop_n he_o plain_o intimate_v that_o the_o ordination_n make_v by_o minister_n and_o bishop_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o bishop_n ordain_v only_o as_o bishop_n not_o as_o minister_n 14._o caâetan_n on_o that_o text_n say_v that_o paul_n relate_v that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n saint_n acerdotalis_fw-la officii_fw-la be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a or_o priest_n office_n not_o the_o bishop_n and_o faber_n in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o write_v that_o presbyter_n do_v use_v to_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o head_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v purge_v or_o make_v complete_a minister_n pour_v forth_o holy_a prayer_n i_o know_v indeed_o that_o 1._o aquinas_n and_o other_o schoolman_n hold_v that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n to_o confer_v holy_a order_n yet_o he_o and_o 6._o durandus_fw-la grant_n that_o this_o be_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o divine_a right_n orinstitution_n but_o only_o by_o humane_a constitution_n and_o canon_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o more_o excellent_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v over_o and_o above_o minister_n and_o for_o order_n sake_n yea_o they_o both_o affirm_v that_o presbyter_n do_v and_o aught_o to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n the_o rhemist_n in_o their_o annotation_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o confess_v that_o when_o a_o priest_n be_v ordain_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n present_a do_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n even_o at_o this_o day_n among_o they_o and_o have_v ancient_o use_v heretofore_o to_o lay_v hand_n on_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v cite_v the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o for_o proof_n thereof_o and_o the_o cite_v canonist_n with_o some_o 5._o schoolman_n grant_v that_o priest_n and_o minister_n by_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n and_o licence_n may_v without_o a_o bishop_n concurrent_n ordain_v deacon_n and_o minister_n but_o a_o mere_a layman_n or_o one_o that_o be_v no_o minister_n can_v do_v it_o a_o clear_a proof_n that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n appertain_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n rest_v more_o in_o the_o minister_n person_n then_o in_o the_o pope_n grant_n or_o licence_n else_o why_o may_v not_o a_o lay_v man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o minister_n grant_v order_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n licence_n or_o why_o shall_v minister_n join_v with_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o to_o pass_v from_o these_o to_o the_o reform_a church_n beyond_o the_o sea_n we_o know_v that_o most_o of_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n that_o all_o their_o minister_n and_o deacon_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o common_a election_n of_o the_o people_n and_o magistrate_n and_o imposition_n of_o the_o senate_n or_o college_n of_o minister_n hand_n yet_o none_o of_o our_o prelate_n have_v be_v so_o impudent_o shameless_a as_o to_o deny_v their_o ordination_n and_o minister_n to_o be_v lawful_a or_o their_o practice_n to_o be_v dissonant_n from_o the_o scripture_n or_o they_o to_o be_v true_a church_n what_o their_o writer_n have_v determine_v concern_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n incident_a to_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o to_z bishop_n only_o as_o minister_n and_o servant_n to_o the_o church_n not_o lord_n these_o ensue_a passage_n will_v declare_v 23._o joannes_n lukawitz_n in_o his_o confession_n of_o the_o âaborites_n against_o rokenzana_n c._n 13._o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n write_v thus_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n only_o by_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o have_v more_o effectual_a authority_n of_o his_o nature_n then_o other_o minister_n be_v not_o from_o any_o faith_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n sed_fw-la ex_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la habetur_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o from_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o 445._o waldenses_n and_o toborites_n that_o the_o power_n of_o give_v order_n and_o impose_v hand_n belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n by_o god_n law_n where_o both_o one_o and_o no_o bishop_n great_a than_o any_o presbyter_n in_o honour_n or_o jurisdiction_n 2_o melanchton_n write_v that_o if_o bishop_n and_o ordinary_n be_v enemy_n of_o the_o church_n or_o will_v not_o give_v order_n yet_o the_o church_n retain_v their_o right_n for_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o church_n there_o be_v a_o right_a of_o administer_a the_o gospel_n wherefore_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v retain_v the_o right_n of_o call_v elect_a and_o ordain_v minister_n and_o this_o right_n be_v a_o gift_n give_v to_o the_o church_n which_o no_o humane_a authority_n can_v take_v from_o the_o church_n as_o paul_n witness_v in_o the_o four_o of_o the_o ephesian_n where_o he_o say_v when_o he_o ascend_v upon_o high_a he_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n and_o he_o reckon_v doctor_n and_o pastor_n among_o the_o proper_a gift_n of_o the_o church_n and_o add_v that_o such_o be_v give_v for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n where_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o right_a of_o elect_v and_o ordain_v minister_n one_o thing_n have_v make_v a_o difference_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n to_o wit_n ordination_n because_o it_o be_v institute_v that_o one_o bishop_n may_v ordain_v in_o many_o church_n but_o see_v that_o by_o god_n law_n there_o be_v not_o divers_a degree_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o a_o ordination_n make_v by_o a_o pastorin_n his_o church_n be_v ratify_v by_o god_n law_n marsilius_n patavinus_n in_o his_o defensoris_fw-la pacis_fw-la pars_fw-la 2._o ãâã_d 15._o 17._o affirm_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n belong_v not_o to_o priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o people_n where_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o minister_n that_o every_o priest_n by_o divine_a authority_n may_v confer_v all_o sacrament_n and_o give_v order_n as_o well_o as_o any_o bishop_n and_o that_o every_o priest_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o promote_v any_o believer_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o the_o priesthood_n he_o prepare_v he_o ministerial_o but_o god_n simple_o and_o immediate_o impress_v the_o sacerdotal_a power_n or_o character_n the_o original_a property_n of_o ordain_v minister_n be_v only_o in_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 14._o
bishop_n when_o he_o be_v but_o ordain_v a_o minister_n and_o that_o famous_a gregory_n nazianzen_n three_o hundred_o and_o seventy_o year_n after_o christ_n in_o his_o 9_o 13._o 15._o 21._o and_o 28._o oration_n p._n 262._o 357._o 368._o 479._o as_o elias_n cretensis_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o those_o place_n testify_v use_v the_o word_n bishop_n and_o presbyter_n reciprocal_o still_v bishop_n presbyter_n and_o presbyter_n bishop_n make_v they_o all_o one_o by_o divine_a institution_n and_o different_a only_o by_o humane_a invention_n which_o difference_n he_o hearty_o wish_v be_v abolish_v himself_o work_n voluntary_o resign_v his_o bishopric_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v take_v himself_o to_o a_o more_o private_a and_o retire_a life_n the_o father_n therefore_o thus_o promiscuous_o use_v the_o name_n bishop_n and_o presbyter_n still_v bishop_n presbyter_n and_o presbyter_n bishop_n and_o make_v both_o of_o they_o one_o and_o the_o same_o by_o divine_a institution_n their_o still_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_z and_o crete_n be_v no_o argument_n or_o proof_n at_o all_o that_o they_o be_v diocaesan_n or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o those_o place_n or_o that_o they_o have_v or_o any_o bishop_n now_o have_v by_o divine_a institution_n any_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o preeminence_n over_o other_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n or_o be_v superior_a to_o they_o in_o order_n dignity_n or_o degree_n four_o the_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o we_o english_a a_o bishop_n signify_v proper_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o overseer_n survayor_n superintendent_n or_o administrator_n and_o be_v oft_o time_n apply_v both_o by_o greek_a author_n and_o the_o septuagint_a greek_a translator_n to_o secular_a office_n 224._o hence_o â _o homer_n style_v hector_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n in_o the_o verse_n of_o solon_n in_o demostenes_n pallas_n be_v call_v the_o bishop_n of_o athens_n plutarch_n in_o the_o life_n of_o numa_n style_v venus_n the_o bishop_n over_o the_o dead_a and_o he_o there_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o vestal_a virgin_n suidas_n record_v that_o in_o the_o athenian_a republic_n those_o who_o be_v send_v to_o the_o city_n under_o their_o jurisdiction_n to_o oversee_v the_o affair_n of_o their_o companion_n be_v call_v bishop_n cicero_n in_o his_o seven_o book_n to_o atticus_n write_v thus_o pompey_n will_v have_v i_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o all_o compagnia_n and_o the_o maritine_n coast_n to_o who_o the_o choice_n and_o sum_n of_o the_o business_n may_v be_v refer_v and_o in_o the_o pandect_n the_o clerk_n of_o the_o market_n be_v call_v bishop_n the_o septuagint_n numb_a 13._o read_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o army_n 10_o 4._o king_n 11._o they_o read_v the_o bishop_n who_o be_v over_o the_o army_n and_o the_o bishop_n over_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n where_o watchman_n guardian_n and_o overseer_n be_v call_v bishop_n 2._o chron._n 34._o the_o overlooker_n of_o the_o workman_n be_v style_v bishop_n judge's_n 9_o zebul_n be_v call_v abimeleche_n bishop_n in_o the_o greek_a which_o we_o now_o english_a his_o officer_z so_o num._n 4._o 16._o the_o office_n of_o eliazar_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o function_n of_o judas_n psalm_n 109._o 8._o be_v torm_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o bishopric_n by_o the_o septuagint_n and_o so_o express_o style_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o and_o english_v by_o we_o acts._n 1._o 20._o his_o bishopric_n let_v another_o take_v yea_o constantine_n the_o great_a as_o â¡_o eusebius_n record_n in_o his_o life_n invite_v some_o bishop_n 24._o to_o a_o feast_n call_v himself_o a_o bishop_n in_o their_o presence_n utter_v these_o word_n you_o say_v he_o be_v bishop_n within_o the_o church_n but_o i_o be_o constitute_v of_o god_n a_o bishop_n without_o the_o church_n our_o new_a translator_n acts._n 20._o 28._o render_v the_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o title_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n overseer_n luke_n 19_o 44._o the_o time_n of_o god_n visitation_n and_o overthrow_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v term_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n luke_n 1._o 6._o 7._o 8._o c._n 7._o 16._o heb._n 2._o 6._o the_o greek_a word_n which_o we_o translate_v have_v visit_v we_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d whence_o the_o day_n of_o god_n gracious_a visitation_n of_o his_o people_n to_o convert_v they_o to_o he_o in_o mercy_n be_v call_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o pet._n 2._o 12._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o day_n of_o visitation_n yea_o our_o very_a visit_v of_o sick_a person_n prisoner_n orphan_n and_o widow_n be_v term_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o though_o a_o mere_a act_n of_o charity_n humility_n and_o christian_a duty_n 107._o not_o of_o jurisdiction_n and_o lordly_a prelacy_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d math._n 25._o 36._o 43._o and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d jam._n 1._o 27._o to_o visit_v or_o to_o play_v the_o bishop_n part_n and_o duty_n which_o the_o mean_a christian_a yea_o woman_n though_o uncapable_a of_o sacred_a order_n may_v do_v and_o aught_o to_o perform_v as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o so_o intermeddle_v with_o other_o man_n affair_n or_o covet_v of_o any_o other_o man_n office_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o be_v term_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1._o pet._n 4._o 15._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o play_v as_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n in_o another_o man_n diocese_n yea_o every_o minister_n feed_v and_o take_v the_o oversight_n of_o his_o proper_a flock_n be_v style_v the_o do_v of_o a_o bishop_n office_n and_o those_o presbyter_n who_o do_v thus_o be_v not_o only_o say_v to_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 1._o pet._n 5._o 21._o that_o be_v man_n execute_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o likewise_o style_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v true_a and_o proper_a bishop_n a_o name_n give_v only_o to_o presbyter_n and_o none_o but_o they_o in_o holy_a scripture_n acts._n 20._o 28._o phil._n 1._o 1._o titus_n 1._o 7._o and_o to_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v style_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n 1._o pet._n 2._o 25._o but_o not_o to_o any_o apostle_n evangelist_n diocaesan_n or_o other_o prelate_n none_o such_o be_v particular_o term_v a_o bishop_n throughout_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n the_o father_n make_v bishop_n and_o overseer_n all_o one_o derive_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o bishop_n from_o a_o greek_a verb_n which_o signify_v to_o overlook_v watch_n ward_n or_o take_v care_v off_o hence_o 727._o augustine_n write_v thus_o he_o do_v keep_v he_o be_v careful_a he_o do_v watch_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v over_o those_o over_o who_o he_o be_v set_v and_o bishop_n do_v thus_o for_o therefore_o a_o high_a place_n be_v set_v for_o bishop_n that_o they_o may_v superintend_v and_o as_o it_o be_v keep_v the_o people_n for_o that_o which_o in_o greek_a be_v call_v a_o bishop_n that_o in_o latin_a be_v interpret_v a_o superintendent_n because_o he_o oversee_v because_o he_o see_v from_o above_o for_o like_a as_o a_o high_a place_n be_v make_v for_o the_o vineyard_n keeper_n to_o keep_v the_o vineyard_n so_o a_o high_a place_n also_o be_v make_v for_o the_o bishop_n and_o a_o perilous_a account_n be_v to_o be_v render_v of_o this_o high_a place_n unless_o we_o stand_v therein_o with_o such_o a_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v be_v under_o your_o foot_n in_o humility_n and_o pray_v for_o you_o that_o he_o who_o know_v your_o mind_n he_o may_v keep_v you_o because_o we_o can_v see_v you_o enter_v and_o go_v out_o but_o yet_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o see_v what_o you_o think_v in_o your_o heart_n that_o we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o see_v what_o you_o do_v in_o your_o house_n how_o therefore_o do_v we_o keep_v you_o like_o man_n as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v receive_v we_o keep_v you_o out_o of_o the_o office_n of_o dispensation_n but_o we_o will_v be_v keep_v together_o with_o you_o we_o be_v as_o pastor_n to_o you_o but_o under_o that_o pastor_n christ_n we_o be_v sheep_n together_o with_o you_o we_o be_v as_o teacher_n to_o you_o out_o of_o this_o place_n but_o under_o that_o one_o master_n we_o be_v scholar_n with_o you_o in_o this_o school_n if_o we_o will_v be_v keep_v by_o he_o who_o be_v humble_v for_o we_o and_o be_v exalt_v to_o keep_v we_o let_v we_o be_v humble_a well_o those_o set_a themselves_o before_o christ_n who_o will_v be_v high_a here_o where_o he_o be_v humble_a let_v they_o therefore_o be_v humble_a here_o if_o they_o will_v be_v exalt_v there_o where_o he_o be_v exalt_v in_o another_o place_n he_o
sin_n upon_o he_o levit._fw-la 19_o 17._o prov._n 9_o 8._o eccles_n 9_o 5._o and_o so_o be_v every_o magistrate_n to_o do_v nehem._n 13._o 11._o to_o 31._o psal_n 141._o 5._o this_o therefore_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o any_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n the_o rather_o because_o this_o rebuke_n be_v to_o be_v public_o in_o the_o church_n before_o all_o not_o in_o a_o private_a chamber_n or_o consistory_n court_n as_o all_o expositor_n accord_n in_o which_o our_o bishop_n pronounce_v their_o censure_n obj._n 5._o the_o five_o argument_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v the_o 1_o tim._n 5_o 19_o against_o a_o elder_a receive_v not_o a_o accusation_n but_o before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n he_o have_v power_n to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o minister_n that_o so_o he_o may_v correct_v they_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la for_o 1._o he_o may_v have_v this_o power_n to_o receive_v such_o accusation_n as_o a_o evangelist_n and_o paul_n coadjutor_n second_o as_o paul_n delegate_n or_o official_a as_o our_o bishop_n official_o vicar_n and_o chauncellor_n now_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n under_o they_o as_o their_o substitute_n only_o not_o by_o any_o inherent_a episcopal_a dignity_n or_o authority_n in_o themselves_o three_o he_o may_v do_v it_o by_o the_o appointement_n and_o mutual_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n who_o have_v power_n in_o all_o case_n of_o difference_n to_o constitute_v any_o man_n a_o judge_n though_o no_o bishop_n 1._o cor._n 6_o 1_o to_o 7._o four_o he_o may_v do_v it_o only_o as_o a_o elder_a elder_n have_v power_n to_o rule_v well_o 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o and_o so_o by_o consequence_n to_o receive_v accusation_n and_o to_o correct_v delinquent_n by_o reproof_n or_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n with_o the_o consequent_a of_o the_o congregation_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 4_o 5._o 11_o 12_o c._n 6_o 1_o to_o 7._o gal._n 6_o 1._o 2._o thessaly_n 3._o 14_o 15._o five_o i_o have_v almost_o add_v that_o he_o may_v have_v do_v it_o as_o a_o ecclesiastical_a commissioner_n but_o that_o i_o consider_v that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o a_o elder_a but_o under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n at_o least_o first_o examine_v and_o our_o jacobi_fw-la ecclesiastical_a commissioner_n and_o bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o divine_a apostolical_a precept_n by_o which_o they_o will_v prove_v timothy_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la that_o they_o will_v pursevante_n silence_n suspend_v imprison_v minister_n and_o elder_n and_o put_v they_o to_o self_n accuse_v one_o ex_fw-la officio_fw-la oath_n and_o upon_o every_o jealousy_n suspicion_n and_o private_a accusation_n of_o any_o drunkard_n rascal_n or_o without_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n or_o accuser_n first_o examine_v against_o they_o and_o bring_v face_n to_o face_n a_o direct_a proof_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o proceed_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la answ_n 2._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o by_o elder_a in_o this_o text_n as_o 951._o many_o conceive_v be_v not_o mean_v a_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n but_o a_o ancient_a man_n as_o it_o be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n so_o as_o it_o prove_v not_o that_o timothy_n have_v any_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o elder_n that_o be_v minister_n of_o ephesus_n who_o rule_v that_o church_n v_o 17._o and_o âw_o ãâ¦ã_z bishop_n of_o it_o acts._n 20_o 28._o where_o paul_n enjoin_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o as_o have_v no_o superintendent_n paramount_n they_o not_o give_v timothy_n any_o charge_n to_o take_v heed_n to_o they_o three_o admit_v these_o elder_n be_v minister_n yet_o timothy_n have_v no_o judiciary_n pour_v over_o they_o to_o suspend_v or_o correct_v they_o since_o v_o ãâã_d he_o be_v express_o enjoin_v not_o to_o rebuke_v a_o elder_a but_o entreat_v he_o as_o a_o father_n which_o be_v far_o from_o give_v he_o any_o such_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o our_o bishop_n now_o exercise_v and_o usurp_v use_v godly_a minister_n and_o raâing_v they_o rather_o like_o dog_n and_o scullion_n than_o elder_n four_o the_o word_n be_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o excommunicate_v suspend_v convent_n or_o censure_v a_o elder_a but_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o he_o but_o before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n now_o to_o condemn_v or_o censure_v be_v one_o thing_n to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n another_o the_o first_o not_o but_o a_o judge_n or_o chief_a officer_n can_v do_v the_o second_o every_o register_n clerk_n informer_n or_o under_o officer_n yea_o every_o private_a christian_a be_v capable_a to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n and_o every_o ordinary_a minister_n too_o against_o another_o superior_a to_o he_o in_o age_n estate_n or_o place_n either_o private_o to_o admonish_v he_o that_o be_v accuse_v of_o his_o fault_n or_o to_o reproove_v he_o for_o it_o or_o to_o counsel_v he_o how_o to_o repent_v and_o redress_v it_o or_o to_o comfort_v he_o if_o he_o be_v deject_v with_o it_o or_o to_o inform_v against_o he_o to_o the_o magistrate_n or_o whole_a congregation_n or_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o his_o amendment_n math._n 18._o 15._o 16._o 17._o levit._fw-la 19_o 7._o gal._n 6._o 1._o 2._o thess_n 3._o 14._o 15._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 20._o 24._o tit._n 1._o 10._o to_o 14._o 2._o johan._n 10._o 11._o jud._n 22._o 23._o which_o well_o expound_v this_o text_n five_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o text_n be_v this_o that_o timothy_n and_o other_o christian_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o especial_o minister_n shall_v not_o light_o receive_v or_o believe_v any_o ill_a report_n chief_o of_o a_o elder_a or_o minister_n without_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o by_o two_o of_o three_o able_a witness_n as_o will_v plain_o appear_v by_o paralel_v it_o with_o psal_n 15._o 3._o numb_a 35._o 30._o deut._n 17._o 6._o c._n 19_o 15._o hebr._n 10._o 28._o and_o with_o math._n 18._o 15._o 16._o 17._o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v thus_o moreover_o if_o thy_o brother_n shall_v trespass_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o he_o and_o thou_o alone_o if_o he_o shall_v hear_v thou_o thou_o have_v gain_v thy_o brother_n but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v thou_o then_o take_v with_o thou_o two_o or_o three_o more_o that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v establish_v and_o if_o he_o shall_v neglect_v to_o hear_v they_o tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o neglect_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o beathen_a man_n and_o publican_n a_o perfect_a commentary_n on_o this_o text_n of_o paul_n and_o a_o direct_a censure_n of_o our_o bishop_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la oath_n and_o proceed_n by_o the_o party_n own_o self-accusing_a oath_n and_o answer_v without_o or_o before_o witness_v produce_v 6._o this_o text_n admit_v it_o give_v power_n to_o timothy_n to_o take_v accusation_n against_o a_o elder_a before_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n yet_o it_o exclude_v not_o the_o other_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n from_o have_v like_o power_n with_o he_o it_o give_v he_o not_o any_o sole_a power_n to_o hear_v and_o determine_v complaint_n without_o the_o other_o elder_n assistance_n or_o consent_n but_o together_o with_o they_o math._n 18_o 19_o 1_o tim._n 5_o 17._o acts._n 20_o 28._o hence_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 23._o and_o after_o it_o gratian._n caus_n 15._o quaest_n 7._o cap._n nullus_fw-la decree_n that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v hear_v no_o man_n cause_n without_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clerk_n and_o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v void_a unless_o it_o be_v confirm_v with_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o clergy_n yea_o gratian_n in_o that_o place_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o hispalis_n agatha_n the_o first_o carthage_n the_o second_o and_o four_o gregory_n who_o word_n and_o canon_n he_o recite_v at_o large_a that_o a_o minister_n presbyter_n or_o deacon_n can_v be_v punish_v or_o deprive_v by_o the_o bishop_n alone_o but_o by_o a_o synod_n or_o council_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n can_v hear_v or_o determine_v the_o cause_n of_o cleargyman_n alone_o without_o associate_a the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n or_o other_o adjoin_a bishop_n with_o he_o for_o which_o cause_n more_o many_o ancient_a counsel_n deny_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o counsel_n keep_v in_o each_o province_n every_o year_n to_o hear_v and_o determine_v all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o controversy_n this_o text_n therefore_o prove_v nothing_o for_o timothy_n ecclesiastical_a or_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v write_v rather_o for_o the_o church_n and_o minister_n future_a
be_v present_a shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n by_o the_o bishop_n hand_n this_o canon_n be_v incorporate_v by_o gratian_n into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o have_v be_v practise_v and_o put_v in_o ure_n in_o all_o age_n since_o till_o now_o the_o very_a gloss_n on_o 23._o gratian_n yea_o and_o 14._o the_o rhemist_n too_o assure_v we_o that_o when_o a_o priest_n be_v ordain_v all_o the_o priest_n stand_v by_o do_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o he_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o form_n of_o ordain_v minister_n prescribe_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n or_o counsel_n but_o this_o alone_a which_o all_o church_n have_v observe_v and_o yet_o retain_v since_o therefore_o no_o bishop_n may_v or_o aught_o of_o himself_o alone_o to_o ordain_v minister_n without_o the_o assent_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o clergy_n people_n and_o other_o there_o present_a as_o 25._o gratian_n veritatis_fw-la illyricus_n and_o 35._o gersome_a bucerus_n prove_v at_o large_a and_o since_o all_o minister_n present_v ought_v join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o all_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o have_v ever_o usual_o do_v it_o in_o all_o age_n and_o church_n how_o this_o prerogative_n of_o ordination_n shall_v be_v peculiar_a to_o bishop_n who_o may_v not_o do_v it_o without_o minister_n concurrrence_n no_o more_o than_o minister_n without_o they_o i_o can_v yet_o conjecture_v true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o 296._o council_n of_o ancyra_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 308._o can._n 3._o ordain_v that_o choral_a bishop_n shall_v not_o ordain_v presbyter_n or_o deacon_n nor_o yet_o presbyter_n of_o the_o city_n in_o another_o parish_n but_o when_o the_o bishop_n shall_v permit_v they_o by_o his_o letter_n and_o the_o 404_o council_n of_o antioch_n under_o pope_n julius_n canon_n 10._o decree_n that_o choral_a bishop_n shall_v not_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n without_o the_o bishop_n privity_n from_o whence_o i_o observe_v first_o that_o before_o these_o counsel_n restrain_v the_o power_n of_o choral_a bishop_n and_o presbyter_n that_o they_o do_v and_o may_v lawful_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n without_o the_o bishop_n privity_n or_o assent_n second_o that_o by_o his_o assent_n and_o licence_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o without_o the_o bishop_n presence_n may_v lawful_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n these_o counsel_n therefore_o plain_o resolve_v that_o there_o be_v a_o inhaerent_a right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n in_o presbyter_n and_o choral_a bishop_n as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o that_o with_o the_o bishop_n consent_n and_o license_v they_o may_v lawful_o execute_v it_o and_o confer_v order_n therefore_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v not_o invest_v only_o in_o bishop_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n for_o than_o none_o else_o can_v ordain_v but_o they_o alone_o the_o forge_a constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n father_v on_o pope_n 20._o clement_n prescribe_v that_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n may_v not_o ordain_v other_o priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o bishop_n only_o and_o the_o 800._o council_n of_o hispalis_n or_o spa_n about_o the_o year_n 6_o 7._o canon_n 5._o 7._o out_o of_o pope_n leo_n epist._n 86._o decree_n that_o presbyter_n and_o choral_a bishop_n which_o be_v all_o one_o shall_v not_o presume_v to_o ordain_v preiste_n or_o deacon_n or_o to_o consecrate_v altar_n or_o church_n for_o in_o holy_a writ_n by_o god_n command_n 40._o moses_n only_o erect_v the_o altar_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o only_o anoint_v it_o because_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 98._o moses_n and_o aaron_n among_o his_o priest_n therefore_o that_o which_o be_v command_v only_o to_o the_o chief_a priest_n to_o do_v of_o who_o moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v a_o type_n presbyter_n who_o carry_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n may_v not_o presume_v to_o enchroach_v upon_o for_o although_o they_o have_v in_o most_o thing_n a_o common_a dispensation_n of_o mystery_n with_o bishop_n yet_o they_o must_v know_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v notwithstanding_o prohibit_v they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a law_n some_o thing_n by_o new_a ecclesiastical_a rules_n or_o canon_n as_o the_o consecration_n of_o presbyter_n deacon_n and_o virgin_n as_o also_o the_o constitution_n benediction_n or_o unction_n of_o the_o altar_n very_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o consecrate_v church_n or_o altar_n not_o to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v or_o to_o those_o who_o be_v convert_v from_o heresy_n nor_o to_o make_v chrism_n nor_o to_o sign_n the_o forehead_n of_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v with_o chrism_n 6._o nor_o yet_o public_o to_o reconcile_v any_o penitent_a person_n in_o the_o mass_n nor_o to_o send_v form_v epistle_n to_o any_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v unlawful_a to_o presbyter_n or_o choral_a bishop_n because_o they_o have_v not_o pontificatus_fw-la apicem_fw-la the_o high_a degree_n of_o the_o high_a preist-hood_n which_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v command_v to_o be_v due_a only_o to_o bishop_n that_o by_o this_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o degree_n and_o the_o hight_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v be_v demonstrate_v neither_o shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o presbyter_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o baptistery_n before_o the_o bishop_n presence_n not_o to_o baptize_v or_o sign_n a_o infant_n the_o bishop_n be_v present_a nor_o to_o reconcile_v penitent_n without_o the_o bishop_n command_n nor_o to_o consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v present_a nor_o in_o his_o presence_n to_o teach_v or_o bless_v or_o salute_v the_o people_n no_o nor_o yet_o to_o exhort_v they_o all_o which_o thing_n be_v know_v to_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o 86._o see_v apostolic_a these_o two_o last_o authority_n be_v the_o chief_a that_o the_o papist_n jesuit_n and_o our_o prelate_n insist_v on_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o presbyter_n but_o to_o remove_v these_o two_o obstacle_n consider_v first_o that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o either_o of_o these_o two_o constitution_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o institution_n or_o that_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n the_o thing_n only_o in_o question_n second_o that_o the_o council_n express_o resolve_v that_o the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n be_v prohibit_v presbyter_n and_o appropriate_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o ancient_a constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o those_o who_o immediate_o succeed_v they_o but_o only_o by_o some_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o constitution_n then_o new_o make_v and_o by_o the_o authority_n only_o of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o can_v deprive_v minister_n of_o that_o power_n of_o ordination_n which_o the_o scripture_n and_o god_n himself_o have_v give_v they_o three_o that_o before_o these_o late_a canon_n and_o constitution_n presbyter_n may_v lawful_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n four_o that_o the_o chief_a reason_n why_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v take_v from_o minister_n and_o thus_o monopolise_v to_o bishop_n even_o by_o their_o own_o constitution_n wherein_o they_o have_v ever_o favour_v themselves_o be_v only_o to_o advance_v the_o power_n authority_n dignity_n ambition_n and_o pride_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n and_o to_o distinguish_v they_o in_o degree_n and_o order_n from_o ordinary_a minister_n which_o of_o right_n be_v and_o otherwise_o will_v be_v their_o equal_n both_o in_o jurisdiction_n power_n and_o degree_n five_o that_o they_o bring_v not_o one_o syllable_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n not_o to_o minister_n which_o they_o will_v have_v certain_o do_v have_v there_o be_v any_o text_n to_o warrant_v it_o but_o that_o all_o they_o allege_v be_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o wit_n that_o moses_n only_o consecrate_v the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o altar_n ergo_fw-la none_o but_o bishop_n must_v consecrate_v minister_n altar_n church_n a_o learned_a argument_n ergo_fw-la none_o but_o king_n and_o temporal_a magistrate_n no_o not_o bishop_n themselves_o may_v do_v it_o have_v be_v a_o better_a consequent_a for_o moses_n be_v no_o priest_n muchlesse_a a_o bishop_n the_o high_a priest_n which_o be_v 11._o aaron_n office_n not_o he_o there_o be_v but_o 35._o one_o high_a priest_n at_o once_o and_o he_o a_o 23._o type_n of_o our_o high_a priest_n christ_n but_o a_o civil_a magigistrate_n yet_o god_n command_v
reformatione_fw-la can._n 7._o 8._o it_o enjoin_v that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n when_o minister_n or_o deacon_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n call_v to_o he_o the_o preiste_n and_o other_o prudent_a man_n skilful_a of_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o exercise_v in_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n shall_v diligent_o inquire_v and_o examine_v before_o they_o the_o stock_n person_n age_n institution_n manner_n doctrine_n and_o faith_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v and_o that_o those_o order_n shall_v be_v public_o confer_v and_o celebrate_v in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v to_o and_o present_a at_o it_o or_o if_o in_o any_o other_o place_n or_o church_n of_o the_o diocese_n praesenti_fw-la clero_fw-la loci_fw-la the_o clergy_n of_o the_o place_n be_v present_a 67._o pope_n anacletus_fw-la and_o the_o etc._n canon_n law_n have_v long_o before_o that_o time_n ordain_v that_o priest_n and_o deacon_n shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n ita_fw-la ut_fw-la cives_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la assensum_fw-la praebent_fw-la so_o as_o the_o citizen_n and_o other_o preiste_n assent_v thereunto_o which_o they_o usual_o do_v and_o aught_o to_o do_v as_o gratian_n with_o usisunt_fw-la other_o prove_v at_o large_a so_o that_o though_o this_o council_n and_o the_o other_o canon_n and_o constitution_n debar_v presbyter_n and_o minister_n from_o the_o act_n and_o exercise_v of_o ordination_n which_o yet_o they_o ever_o use_v and_o practice_v as_o assistant_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o can_v ordain_v none_o but_o by_o their_o assent_n since_o they_o ought_v to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o they_o deprive_v they_o not_o of_o their_o inherent_a right_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o as_o assistant_n to_o the_o bishop_n which_o they_o have_v ever_o use_v i_o pass_v now_o from_o these_o counsel_n and_o constitution_n to_o the_o father_n who_o jump_v in_o judgement_n with_o they_o it_o be_v true_a that_o 1._o s._n hierome_n 75._o epiphanius_n *_o isidor_n hispalensis_n 414_o ambrose_n 101._o augustine_n 86._o leo_n and_o â¡_o other_o affirm_v that_o bishop_n only_o in_o their_o time_n do_v use_v to_o ordain_v minister_n and_o deacon_n and_o that_o presbyter_n may_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o bishop_n do_v except_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n and_o some_o other_o 7._o trifle_a toy_n as_o consecrate_v of_o altar_n church_n virgin_n chrism_n etc._n etc._n not_o warrant_v by_o god_n word_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o determine_v that_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n by_o divine_a institution_n and_o appointment_n that_o presbyter_n have_v no_o right_n at_o all_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o confer_v order_n or_o that_o they_o may_v not_o do_v it_o in_o any_o case_n but_o they_o express_o aver_v the_o contrary_a for_o as_o they_o do_v join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n forecited_a so_o in_o s._n ambrose_n his_o time_n in_o egypt_n if_o the_o bishop_n be_v absent_a the_o presbyter_n use_v to_o consign_v 1._o and_o confer_v order_n as_o this_o 4._o father_n testify_v and_o 101._o s._n augustine_n record_v that_o in_o alexandria_n and_o throughout_o all_o egypt_n if_o the_o bishop_n be_v want_v the_o presbyter_n do_v consecrate_v and_o give_v order_n hence_o aërius_n as_o 75._o epiphanius_n report_v his_o word_n reason_v in_o this_o manner_n what_o be_v a_o bishop_n to_o a_o presbyter_n one_o differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o other_o it_o be_v one_o order_n say_v he_o one_o honour_n and_o one_o dignity_n imponit_fw-la manus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la 135._o ita_fw-la etiam_fw-la presbyter_n the_o bishop_n impose_v his_o hand_n or_o ordain_v minister_n so_o likewise_o do_v the_o presbyter_n the_o bishop_n baptize_v so_o also_o do_v the_o presbyter_n the_o bishop_n sit_v in_o a_o throne_n so_o also_o do_v the_o presbyter_n and_o he_o allege_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o a_o bishop_n 14._o neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n epiphanius_n there_o deny_v not_o direct_o that_o presbyter_n than_o do_v use_v to_o ordain_v but_o demand_n how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v not_o have_v imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o election_n of_o minister_n or_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o a_o bishop_n a_o false_a and_o miserable_a shift_n since_o all_o 609._o history_n father_n author_n counsel_n testify_v that_o in_o that_o age_n presbyter_n have_v always_o their_o voice_n in_o the_o elelection_n yea_o their_o hand_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o deacon_n s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o zeph._n c._n 2._o tom._n 5._o p._n 218._o d._n write_v express_o sacerdotes_fw-la and_o that_o priest_n and_o presbyter_n who_o give_v baptism_n and_o imprecate_v the_o lord_n advent_v to_o the_o eucharist_n make_v also_o the_o oil_n of_o chrism_n manus_n imponunt_n impose_v hand_n instruct_v the_o catechumeny_n levit_fw-la as_o et_fw-la alios_fw-la constitwnt_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la ordain_v levites_n and_o other_o priest_n therefore_o presbyter_n in_o s._n hieronymus_n time_n ordain_v minister_n deacon_n and_o lay_v on_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n yea_o 53._o anastatius_fw-la in_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n pelagius_n the_o first_o record_n that_o this_o pope_n an._n christi_fw-la 555._o for_o want_n of_o three_o bishop_n to_o ordain_v he_o be_v ordain_v pope_n by_o john_n bishop_n of_o perusia_n and_o bonus_n bishop_n of_o florence_n and_o andrea_n presbyter_n de_fw-fr hostia_fw-la and_o andrew_n elder_a or_o minister_n of_o hostia_fw-la which_o luitprandius_n the_o vitis_n pontificum_fw-la p._n 84._o and_o albo_n floriacensis_fw-la in_o his_o life_n p._n 140._o likewise_o testify_v loe_o here_o a_o presbyter_n or_o ordinary_a minister_n ordain_v not_o only_o another_o elder_n but_o a_o bishop_n yea_o a_o pope_n and_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n 731._o the_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a can._n 4._o the_o first_o council_n of_o arelat_n can._n 21._o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 12._o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n â9_n the_o council_n of_o aphricke_n can._n 16._o the_o council_n of_o rhegium_n an._n 472_o the_o council_n of_o arausica_fw-la can._n 21._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n act._n 13._o p._n 187._o with_o sundry_a pope_n decree_n ordain_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v a_o bishop_n but_o by_o three_o bishop_n at_o least_o and_o that_o a_o consecration_n make_v only_o by_o two_o bishop_n shall_v be_v void_a and_o so_o this_o pope_n no_o lawful_o ordain_v pope_n rule_v this_o presbyter_n supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o consecration_n and_o his_o ordination_n good_a and_o valid_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n though_o invalid_a and_o a_o mere_a nullity_n by_o the_o canon_n 302._o an._n 1390._o about_o wicklif_n time_n there_o arise_v in_o england_n certain_a bold_a clerk_n who_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o make_v new_a presbyter_n and_o clerk_n and_o confer_v order_n like_o bishop_n teach_v likewise_o that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o bishop_n be_v whereupon_o they_o lay_v hand_n on_o many_o and_o ordain_v divers_a minister_n who_o affirm_v likewise_o that_o they_o have_v equal_a and_o the_o selfsame_o ecclesiastical_a power_n with_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o wicklife_n and_o the_o waldensis_n which_o doctrine_n of_o they_o be_v true_a but_o their_o practice_n discommend_v yet_o the_o minister_n thus_o ordain_v by_o they_o their_o ordination_n hold_v lawful_a by_o god_n law_n yea_o and_o their_o ordination_n of_o other_o in_o those_o time_n in_o darkness_n and_o persecution_n when_o no_o wickilvist_n lollard_n or_o other_o orthodox_n professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v admit_v into_o order_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o age_n unless_o they_o will_v subscribe_v to_o their_o popish_a assertion_n as_o some_o of_o our_o prelate_n now_o will_v admit_v none_o to_o receive_v order_n unless_o they_o will_v first_o subscribe_v to_o such_o private_a position_n and_o ceremony_n as_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o establish_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o mean_n whereof_o many_o godly_a man_n be_v keep_v from_o the_o ministry_n and_o though_o 14._o chrysostome_n primasius_n theodoret_n ambrose_n rabanus_n maurus_n oecumenius_n theophilact_fw-mi haymo_n with_o some_o other_o interpret_v that_o of_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o by_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o che_fw-mi presbytery_n to_o be_v mean_v either_o of_o paul_n himself_o or_o of_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o
hyperius_n thus_o second_v he_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o deacon_n to_o approve_v the_o person_n to_o the_o multitude_n or_o people_n be_v make_v by_o the_o elder_n in_o who_o this_o authority_n rest_v whence_o it_o be_v here_o add_v with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o priesthood_n or_o as_o it_o be_v more_o significant_o and_o plain_o express_v in_o the_o greek_a with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n which_o signify_v the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o elder_n and_o they_o agree_v that_o he_o who_o be_v elect_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o many_o shall_v be_v commend_v and_o approve_a as_o a_o fit_a person_n by_o this_o external_a sign_n which_o be_v thus_o back_v by_o 14._o hemingius_n the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n be_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n which_o the_o senate_n or_o eldership_n of_o the_o church_n or_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v administer_v 1._o pezelius_n thus_o jump_v in_o judgement_n with_o they_o heretofore_o the_o authority_n of_o ordination_n be_v grant_v to_o bishop_n at_o least_o by_o a_o humane_a institution_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o election_n of_o minister_n and_o that_o the_o other_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v present_a at_o the_o examination_n and_o lay_v their_o hand_n together_o on_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v for_o so_o gratian_n can._n presbyter_n distinct._n 23._o when_o a_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n blessing_n he_o and_o hold_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n all_o the_o presbyter_n likewese_n that_o be_v present_a shall_v hold_v their_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n close_o to_o the_o bishop_n hand_n which_o tend_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o the_o presbyter_n likewise_o may_v retain_v the_o right_n of_o conscerate_v or_o ordain_v to_o themselves_o and_o that_o so_o they_o may_v manifest_v that_o what_o ever_o the_o bishop_n shall_v do_v that_o he_o do_v it_o not_o in_o his_o own_o name_n alone_o but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o dei_fw-la musculuâ_n harp_n on_o the_o same_o string_n thus_o it_o must_v plain_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n heretofore_o be_v elect_v the_o people_n be_v present_a and_o consent_v and_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o confirm_v of_o the_o elder_n by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n this_o form_n of_o elect_a minister_n be_v apostolical_a and_o lawful_a which_o he_o there_o prove_v at_o large_a the_o noble_a 11._o mornay_n lord_n of_o tlessis_n sing_v the_o same_o tune_n in_o these_o word_n these_o thing_n be_v thus_o prove_v we_o add_v that_o the_o right_n of_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n and_o ordain_v minister_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o this_o very_o concern_v the_o apostle_n day_n be_v more_o apparent_a then_o that_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o doubt_v of_o for_o say_v paul_n to_o timothy_n neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o be_v of_o the_o presbyter_n or_o elder_n moreover_o timothy_n himself_o ordain_v elder_n and_o since_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n be_v name_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o function_n if_o the_o bishop_n challenge_v this_o right_n to_o themselves_o from_o the_o scripture_n the_o presbyter_n also_o may_v do_v the_o same_o but_o if_o they_o deny_v it_o to_o presbyter_n in_o this_o very_a thing_n they_o aârogate_v this_o right_n to_o themselves_o and_o very_o this_o be_v a_o good_a form_n of_o argument_n in_o the_o church_n in_o ancient_a time_n 25._o he_o can_v baptise_v he_o can_v consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n which_o be_v the_o great_a a_o more_o honourable_a action_n because_o sacrament_n of_o undoubted_a truth_n of_o high_a note_n and_o use_v therefore_o he_o may_v lay_v on_o hand_n which_o be_v less_o now_o in_o ordain_v elder_n the_o bishop_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o head_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n likewise_o do_v lay_v on_o their_o hand_n as_o appear_v out_o of_o many_o place_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o 502._o centurie_n writer_n inform_v we_o that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o elect_v and_o ordain_v elder_n and_o deacon_n but_o they_o have_v the_o suffrage_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o they_o and_o the_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n with_o they_o do_v ordain_v and_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o which_o they_o prove_v by_o acts._n 6._o and_o 13._o and_o 14._o and_o 19_o and_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o and_o in_o the_o 2._o and_o three_o century_n follow_v c._n 6._o they_o affirm_v that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v thus_o elect_v and_o ordain_v the_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n lay_v their_o hand_n on_o they_o the_o 2._o confession_n of_o saxony_n c._n 12._o resolve_n express_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n to_o ordain_v minister_n lawful_o elect_v and_o call_v the_o 618._o synod_n of_o petrocomia_n artic._n 6._o in_o poland_n decree_v that_o no_o patron_n shall_v receive_v or_o admit_v any_o minister_n to_o teach_v in_o his_o church_n unless_o he_o be_v lawful_o ordain_v and_o send_v by_o the_o superintendent_o and_o the_o elder_n and_o have_v a_o good_a and_o certain_a testimonial_a from_o they_o and_o the_o synod_n of_o wlodislania_n artic._n 8._o and_o 12._o determine_v thus_o the_o ordination_n and_o mission_n of_o minister_n into_o certain_a place_n to_o work_v in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o superintendent_o and_o to_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n their_o colleague_n not_o to_o bishop_n georgius_n major_a in_o his_o enar_n in_o philip._n 1._o 1._o write_v thus_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n paul_n witness_v in_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o where_o he_o say_v neglect_v not_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o etc._n etc._n by_o the_o lay_n on_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o be_v of_o the_o order_n or_o colleadge_v of_o the_o presbyter_n by_o which_o it_o be_v show_v that_o timothy_n be_v call_v and_o ordain_v to_o his_o episcopal_a function_n by_o the_o presbyter_n therefore_o at_o that_o time_n presbyter_n have_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o difference_n between_o they_o to_o these_o i_o may_v add_v master_n john_n calvin_n piscator_fw-la marlorat_n and_o most_o other_o protestant_a commentator_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o zanchius_n destatu_fw-la peccati_fw-la &_o legal_a in_o quartum_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la chemnitius_n loc._n com._n pars_fw-la 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 4._o and_o examen_fw-la concilij_fw-la tridentini_n pars_fw-la 2._o de_fw-fr sacram._n ordinis_fw-la pag._n 224._o 225._o etc._n etc._n where_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o election_n and_o vocation_n of_o minister_n belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o the_o clergy_n that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n sâith_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o that_o timothy_n have_v a_o grace_n and_o a_o gift_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n neither_o say_v he_o only_a of_o my_o hand_n but_o he_o add_v also_o of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v think_v no_o difference_n whether_o any_o one_o be_v ordain_v either_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o elder_n aâtonius_n sadeel_n respon_n ad_fw-la repetita_fw-la turriani_n sophism_n pars_fw-la 2._o locus_fw-la 12._o beza_n de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la gradibus_fw-la junius_n contr._n 5._o l._n c._n 3._o n._n 3._o chamierus_n paustratia_n cathol_n tom._n 2._o de_fw-la oecum_fw-la pontif._n c._n 6._o with_o sundry_a 11._o other_o writer_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o aver_v and_o prove_v against_o the_o papist_n and_o jesuit_n that_o the_o power_n of_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o congregation_n and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o minister_n elder_n and_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n and_o to_z bishop_n only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n but_o he_o that_o have_v handle_v and_o prove_v this_o most_o large_o and_o full_o of_o all_o other_o be_v gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n de_fw-fr gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la be_v a_o answer_n to_o bishop_n downham_n sermon_n of_o bishop_n p._n 261._o 262._o 283._o 287._o 292._o 294._o 299._o 310._o 318._o to_o 367._o 464._o 465._o 493._o 498._o 499._o 524._o 618._o where_o this_o point_n be_v so_o learned_o and_o substantial_o
write_v thus_o 516._o for_o this_o cause_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o that_o desire_v a_o bishopric_n desire_v a_o good_a work_n he_o will_v expound_v what_o a_o bishopric_n be_v it_o be_v a_o name_n of_o labour_n not_o of_o honour_n for_o it_o be_v a_o greek_a word_n and_o derive_v from_o hence_o that_o he_o who_o be_v make_v a_o overseer_n oversee_v those_o over_o who_o he_o be_v set_v namely_o by_o take_v care_n of_o they_o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v over_o but_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v intention_n overseeing_a or_o care_n therefore_o if_o we_o will_v render_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o latin_a we_o may_v say_v it_o be_v to_o play_v the_o superintendent_n that_o he_o may_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n who_o delight_v to_o be_v over_o other_o but_o not_o to_o profit_v they_o on_o which_o word_n ludovicus_n vives_n thus_o comment_n the_o name_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v derive_v either_o from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o signify_v to_o consider_v or_o from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o signify_v the_o same_o and_o to_o visit_v whence_o sâidas_n say_v there_o be_v some_o send_v from_o the_o athenian_n to_o the_o city_n under_o they_o who_o shall_v look_v into_o their_o affair_n and_o these_o be_v call_v bishop_n that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v overseer_n or_o visitor_n and_o observer_n in_o holy_a scripture_n a_o bishop_n be_v common_o call_v a_o watchman_n as_o in_o ezekiel_n 3._o 17._o c._n 33._o 2._o 6._o 7._o and_o in_o hosea_n 5._o 1._o the_o lord_n complain_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v make_v a_o snare_n on_o mizpah_n or_o in_o the_o watch_n tower_n and_o a_o net_n spread_v upon_o tabor_n as_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o this_o bishop_n of_o this_o age_n who_o lay_v snare_n in_o their_o bishopricke_n and_o large_a net_n to_o catch_v many_o but_o not_o with_o thin_a hole_n or_o threade_v lest_o the_o gift_n shall_v swim_v through_o yea_o now_o it_o be_v so_o provide_v by_o the_o diligence_n and_o wit_n of_o certain_a man_n that_o without_o evasion_n of_o this_o law_n a_o bishopric_n may_v not_o only_o be_v lawful_o desire_v but_o likewise_o buy_v and_o sell_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 10._o hom._n upon_o the_o 1._o tim._n s._n hierom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n beda_n on_o the_o 1._o pet._n 2._o 25._o anselm_n on_o phil._n 1._o 1._o aquinas_n secunda_fw-la secundae_fw-la qu._n 184._o art_n 6._o petrus_n de_fw-fr palude_fw-la de_fw-fr potest_fw-la coll._n apostol_n art_n 1._o all_o cite_v by_o bishop_n jewel_n in_o the_o defense_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 6._o c._n 2._o divis_n 1._o p._n 523._o and_o s._n bernard_n also_o the_o consideratione_n ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la l._n 2._o &_o 3._o joint_o resolve_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o superintendent_n watchman_n or_o overseer_n and_o that_o he_o be_v call_v a_o bishop_n from_o hence_o that_o he_o oversee_v survai_v or_o watch_v over_o other_o with_o which_o all_o other_o ancient_a and_o modern_a writer_n whether_o foreign_a or_o domestic_a papist_n or_o protestant_n accord_n hear_v only_a doctor_n john_n ponet_fw-la bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o his_o apology_n against_o doctor_n martin_n in_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n c._n 4._o 5._o p._n 44._o 52._o 53._o 54._o who_o as_o he_o there_o express_o reckon_v up_o pope_n cardinal_n bishop_n priest_n monk_n canon_n friar_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v the_o order_n of_o antichrist_n 116._o tax_v they_o likewise_o severe_o and_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o eustathian_a heretic_n for_o refuse_v to_o wear_v usual_a garment_n and_o put_v upon_o they_o garment_n of_o strange_a fashion_n to_o vary_v from_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n in_o apparel_n so_o he_o thus_o determine_v of_o the_o name_n bishop_n and_o superintendent_n and_o further_o whereas_o it_o please_v martin_n not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n but_o also_o hereafter_o to_o est_fw-la at_o the_o name_n of_o superintendent_n he_o show_v himself_o bend_v to_o condemn_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a though_o in_o so_o do_v âee_n can_v avoid_v his_o open_a shame_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o name_n bishop_n have_v so_o be_v abuse_v that_o when_o it_o be_v speak_v the_o people_n understand_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o great_a lord_n that_o go_v in_o a_o white_a rochet_n with_o a_o wide_a shave_a crown_n and_o that_o carry_v a_o oil_n box_n with_o he_o where_o he_o use_v once_o in_o 7._o year_n ride_v about_o to_o confirm_v child_n etc._n etc._n now_o to_o bring_v the_o people_n fââm_o this_o abuse_n what_o better_a mean_n can_v be_v dâuâsâd_v then_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n their_o error_n by_o another_o word_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o same_o signification_n which_o thing_n by_o the_o term_n superintendent_n will_v in_o time_n have_v be_v well_o bring_v to_o posse_fw-la for_o the_o ordinary_a pain_n of_o such_o as_o be_v call_v superintendent_o shall_v have_v teach_v the_o people_n to_o understand_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o bishop_n which_o you_o papist_n will_v fain_o have_v hide_v from_o they_o and_o the_o word_n superintendent_n be_v a_o very_a latin_a word_n make_v english_a by_o use_n shall_v in_o time_n have_v teach_v the_o people_n by_o the_o very_a etymology_n and_o proper_a signification_n what_o thing_n be_v mean_v when_o they_o hear_v that_o name_n which_o by_o this_o term_n bishop_n can_v not_o so_o well_o be_v do_v by_o reason_n that_o bishop_n in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n be_v overseer_n in_o name_n but_o not_o indeed_o so_o that_o their_o do_n can_v not_o teach_v the_o people_n their_o name_n neither_o what_o they_o shall_v look_v for_o at_o their_o bishop_n hand_n for_o the_o name_n bishop_n speak_v among_o the_o unlearned_a signify_v to_o they_o nothing_o less_o than_o a_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n because_o there_o be_v not_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o rare_a in_o any_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n then_o to_o see_v a_o bishop_n preach_v whereof_o the_o do_n of_o the_o popish_a bishop_n of_o england_n can_v this_o day_n witness_n but_o the_o name_n superintendent_n shall_v make_v he_o ashamed_a of_o his_o negligence_n and_o afraid_a of_o his_o idleness_n know_v 20._o that_o s._n paul_n do_v call_v upon_o he_o to_o attend_v to_o himself_o and_o to_o his_o whole_a flock_n of_o the_o which_o sentence_n our_o bishop_n mark_v the_o first_o pecce_fw-la right_v well_o that_o be_v to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o but_o they_o be_v so_o deaf_a they_o can_v hearken_v to_o the_o second_o that_o be_v to_o look_v to_o their_o flock_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o name_n bishop_n may_v be_v well_o take_v but_o because_o the_o evilnes_n of_o the_o abuse_n have_v marrid_a the_o goodness_n of_o the_o word_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o join_v for_o a_o time_n another_o word_n with_o it_o in_o his_o place_n whereby_o to_o restore_v that_o abuse_a word_n to_o his_o right_a signification_n and_o the_o name_n superintendent_n be_v such_o a_o name_n that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o save_v such_o as_o lack_v both_o learning_n and_o wit_n can_v find_v fault_n withal_o for_o peresius_n the_o spaniard_n and_o a_o archpapist_n out_o of_o who_o martin_n have_v steal_v a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n speak_v of_o a_o bishop_n say_v primum_fw-la episcopi_fw-la munus_fw-la nomen_fw-la ipsum_fw-la prae_fw-la se_fw-la fert_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la spperintendere_fw-la episcopus_fw-la enim_fw-la superintendens_fw-la interpreta_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z visitor_fw-la aut_fw-la supervidens_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o chief_a office_n of_o a_o bishop_n by_o interpretation_n signify_v a_o superintendent_n a_o visitor_n or_o a_o overseer_n why_o do_v not_o martin_n as_o well_o steal_v this_o piece_n out_o of_o peresius_n as_o he_o do_v steal_v all_o the_o common_a place_n that_o he_o have_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o tradition_n in_o his_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n martin_n in_o the_o 88_o leaf_n be_v not_o ashamed_a in_o his_o book_n to_o divide_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o term_n bishop_n and_o superintendent_n as_o though_o the_o one_o be_v not_o signify_v by_o the_o other_o but_o it_o may_v be_v that_o martin_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o popish_a sect_n will_v not_o have_v the_o name_n of_o superintendent_n or_o minister_v use_v lest_o that_o name_n which_o do_v put_v the_o people_n in_o remembrance_n of_o sacrifice_v and_o bludsap_v shall_v be_v forget_v since_o therefore_o this_o title_n bâshop_n be_v thus_o promiscuous_o use_v both_o in_o profane_a and_o christian_a writer_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o for_o any_o officer_n overseer_n survayer_n superintendent_n watchman_n guardian_n pastor_n or_o keeper_n
life_n and_o practice_n of_o our_o bishop_n that_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o other_o how_o they_o now_o open_o fight_v against_o god_n his_o word_n his_o minister_n ordinance_n worship_n people_n grace_n holiness_n yea_o moral_a virtue_n honesty_n civility_n and_o that_o with_o both_o hand_n both_o sword_n at_o once_o we_o may_v rather_o wonder_v that_o the_o lord_n himself_o do_v not_o visible_o descend_v 17._o from_o heaven_n and_o rain_v down_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n on_o we_o as_o he_o once_o do_v on_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n and_o then_o tumble_v we_o all_o headlong_a into_o hell_n yea_o our_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o prelate_n special_o may_v just_o fear_v he_o will_v strike_v they_o all_o quite_o dead_a with_o plague_n as_o he_o do_v pope_n lucius_n the_o second_o who_o die_v of_o the_o pestilence_n stella_fw-la pope_n celestine_n the_o second_o sweep_v away_o with_o the_o same_o disease_n both_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o two_o year_n 53._o wichardus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n elect_v who_o go_v with_o great_a present_n from_o king_n oswy_a unto_o the_o pope_n to_o rome_n to_o fetch_v thence_o his_o pall_n and_o conse_n ãâ¦ã_z ion_n he_o and_o most_o of_o his_o company_n there_o perish_v with_o the_o pest_n 364._o thomas_n bradwardin_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n an._n 1348._o the_o bishop_n of_o marselles_n and_o all_o his_o chapter_n an._n 1348._o 147._o daniel_n the_o 13_o bishop_n of_o prague_n anno_fw-la 1116._o the_o bishope_n of_o par_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_z rhegium_n and_o milan_n anno_fw-la 1085._o with_o many_o other_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n forecited_a heretofore_o that_o they_o may_v no_o long_o be_v a_o insufferable_a plague_n and_o burden_n to_o the_o earth_n or_o provocation_n and_o grievance_n even_o to_o heaven_n itself_o or_o else_o deal_v with_o they_o in_o that_o exemplary_a way_n of_o justice_n as_o he_o do_v with_o 34._o thomas_n arundle_n archbishop_n successive_o both_o of_o york_n and_o canterbury_n one_o of_o their_o predecessor_n a_o grievous_a persecutor_n of_o god_n people_n and_o great_a silencer_n and_o suspender_n of_o his_o minister_n who_o occupy_v both_o his_o tongue_n his_o brain_n and_o episcopal_a power_n as_o 357._o too_o many_o of_o his_o successor_n have_v do_v since_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n and_o tie_v up_o the_o tongue_n of_o god_n minister_n and_o hinder_v the_o preach_n &_o course_n of_o god_n word_n be_v by_o god_n just_a judgement_n so_o strike_v in_o his_o tongue_n with_o which_o he_o have_v oft_o staunder_v the_o poor_a minister_n &_o saint_n of_o god_n as_o seditious_a faction_n people_n chronicler_n rebel_n &_o conventicler_n to_o k._n henry_n the_o four_o as_o some_o of_o his_o rochet_n do_v now_o to_o his_o majesty_n that_o it_o swell_v so_o big_a he_o can_v neither_o swallow_v nor_o speak_v for_o some_o day_n before_o his_o death_n much_o like_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o rich_a glutton_n and_o so_o he_o be_v starve_v choke_v and_o kill_v by_o this_o strange_a tumour_n of_o his_o tongue_n this_o say_v all_o the_o marginal_a writer_n be_v think_v of_o many_o to_o come_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o just_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o that_o he_o so_o bind_v and_o much_o stop_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v peach_v in_o his_o day_n our_o prelate_n now_o have_v far_o great_a cause_n than_o he_o have_v then_o to_o fear_v god_n judgement_n in_o this_o or_o a_o more_o grievous_a nature_n and_o that_o in_o these_o regard_n first_o because_o they_o have_v his_o example_n with_o passim_fw-la many_o other_o like_o precedent_n of_o divine_a revenge_n upon_o persecute_v truth-suppressing_a prelate_n to_o want_n and_o terrify_v they_o which_o this_o prelate_n never_o hear_v of_o and_o so_o be_v more_o inexcusable_a than_o he_o second_o because_o his_o silence_v of_o the_o preacher_n and_o hinder_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n proceed_v rather_o from_o error_n ignorance_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o misguide_a zeal_n then_o malice_n or_o hatred_n against_o the_o gospel_n minister_n and_o professor_n of_o it_o but_o our_o bishop_n proceed_n in_o this_o kind_n proceed_v from_o direct_a and_o wilful_a malice_n and_o enmity_n against_o the_o truth_n gospel_n minister_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n against_o inward_a conviction_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n stare_v they_o in_o the_o face_n the_o very_a 5._o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o or_o next_o degree_n thereto_o into_o which_o they_o be_v dangerous_o fall_v three_o because_o he_o persecute_v silence_a or_o suspend_v none_o that_o profess_v the_o same_o truth_n faith_n and_o doctrine_n which_o he_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o embrace_v but_o only_o those_o who_o he_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o deem_v both_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n but_o our_o prelate_n now_o silence_n suspend_v excommunicate_a deprive_v imprison_v persecute_v those_o who_o profess_v and_o maintain_v the_o establish_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o themselves_o pretend_v to_o defend_v and_o strive_v for_o those_o who_o be_v member_n yea_o pillar_n of_o our_o own_o orthodox_n church_n and_o neither_o separate_v from_o it_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n nor_o discipline_n be_v likewise_o altogether_o spotless_a innocent_a undefiled_a in_o their_o life_n even_o because_o they_o preach_v and_o defend_v god_n truth_n and_o the_o doctrine_n the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o papist_n arminian_n and_o superstitious_a romanize_a noveller_n a_o thing_n so_o strange_a that_o the_o like_a be_v never_o hear_v or_o read_v off_o in_o any_o age_n church_n state_n but_o we_o only_o yea_o a_o thing_n so_o detestable_a as_o not_o find_v among_o the_o savage_a 141._o b_o ãâ¦ã_z ite_z beast_n as_o tiger_n lion_n wolf_n bear_n who_o ever_o hold_v together_o and_o prey_v not_o one_o upon_o the_o other_o parâit_fw-la cognatis_fw-la maculis_fw-la similis_fw-la fera_fw-fr be_v as_o old_a as_o true_a and_o therefore_o most_o monstrous_a most_o detestable_a in_o our_o christian_a church_n and_o prelate_n who_o must_v needs_o expect_v the_o extremity_n of_o god_n judgement_n to_o light_v upon_o they_o for_o it_o four_o because_o he_o put_v down_o preach_v and_o silence_v god_n minister_n in_o time_n of_o health_n and_o prosperity_n only_o but_o our_o prelate_n even_o now_o in_o this_o time_n of_o sickness_n and_o mortality_n when_o god_n in_o special_a manner_n call_v upon_o they_o 1._o to_o cry_v aloud_o and_o spare_v not_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n and_o show_v the_o people_n their_o transgression_n and_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n their_o sin_n yea_o which_o be_v the_o height_n and_o upshot_n of_o all_o impiety_n they_o take_v advantage_n of_o this_o present_a pestilence_n and_o mortality_n to_o put_v down_o all_o lecture_n and_o preach_v when_o as_o all_o former_a age_n have_v set_v they_o up_o together_o with_o prayer_n and_o fast_v to_o as_o a_o caroli_n special_a anti_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z and_o preservative_n *_o against_o the_o plague_n which_o they_o now_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o spread_v it_o a_o impiety_n that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n may_v well_o stand_v amâazed_v at_o and_o future_a age_n will_v hardly_o credit_v yea_o the_o very_a capital_a sin_n of_o which_o the_o jew_n be_v guilty_a f_z who_o both_o kill_v the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o their_o own_o prophet_n and_o persecute_v and_o chase_v out_o as_o the_o margin_n render_v it_o the_o lord_n minister_n forbid_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v to_o fill_v up_o their_o sin_n always_o for_o the_o wrath_n be_v come_v upon_o they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a a_o text_n which_o shall_v smite_v through_o the_o loin_n and_o heart_n of_o all_o persecute_v prelate_n and_o silencer_n of_o god_n minister_n who_o prohibit_v and_o put_v down_o preach_v the_o chief_a and_o most_o principal_a office_n whereunto_o priest_n or_o bishop_n be_v call_v by_o the_o avehority_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o whole_a clergy_n of_o england_n have_v resolve_v in_o the_o 16._o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n dedicate_v by_o they_o to_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o and_o subscribe_v with_o all_o their_o name_n as_o the_o very_a council_n of_o trent_n itself_o have_v deem_v in_o these_o word_n 54_o praedicationis_fw-la munus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la praecipuum_fw-la est_fw-la as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n herself_o in_o the_o homily_n of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 3._o 4._o 5._o and_o before_o they_o all_o our_o 4._o saviour_n christ_n himself_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v pass_v all_o dispute_n conclude_v i_o shall_v therefore_o desire_v these_o dumb_a silence_v and_o silent_a prelate_n who_o will_v have_v all_o other_o minister_n as_o lazy_a mute_a and_o silent_a as_o themselves_o favour_v all_o dumb_a dog_n that_o
weapon_n and_o all_o their_o domineer_a swell_a authority_n overthrow_v by_o that_o very_a principle_n foundation_n on_o which_o they_o have_v presume_v to_o erect_v it_o the_o ancient_a proverb_n be_v here_o true_o verify_v vis_fw-fr consilij_fw-la expers_fw-la moleruit_fw-la sua_fw-la i_o shall_v close_v up_o this_o with_o the_o word_n of_o acute_a 18._o antonius_n sadeel_n who_o after_o a_o large_a proof_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n to_o be_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o by_o divine_a institution_n wind_n up_o all_o in_o this_o manner_n we_o conclude_v therefore_o see_v that_o superior_a episcopal_a dignity_n be_v to_o be_v avowch_v only_o by_o humane_a institution_n tantum_fw-la esse_fw-la humani_fw-la juris_fw-la that_o it_o be_v only_o of_o humane_a right_n on_o the_o contrary_a since_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n bishop_n be_v the_o same_o with_o presbyter_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la presbiteris_fw-la quam_fw-la episcopis_fw-la convenire_fw-la that_o by_o god_n law_n and_o divine_a right_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v as_o much_o to_o presbyter_n as_o to_o bishop_n page_n 51._o l._n 17._o between_o same_o and_o since_o this_o shall_v have_v be_v inscribe_v so_o english_a alexander_n &_o narcissus_n be_v both_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o same_o time_n paulinus_n and_o miletus_n both_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n together_o theodosius_n and_o agapetus_n be_v both_o bishop_n of_o synada_n at_o the_o 3._o same_o season_n 680._o valerius_n and_o augustine_n be_v both_o joint_a bishop_n of_o hippotogether_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n and_o when_o as_o augustine_n be_v loath_a to_o be_v join_v a_o bishop_n with_o valerius_n allege_v it_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v two_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n they_o repyle_v non_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la inusitatum_fw-la that_o this_o be_v no_o unusuallth_v confirm_v this_o both_o by_o example_n of_o the_o african_a and_o other_o foreign_a church_n whereupon_o he_o be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o scisamte_fw-fr church_n of_o rome_n we_o know_v there_o have_v be_v sometime_o two_o sometime_o three_o and_o once_o four_o pope_n and_o bishop_n at_o one_o time_n some_o adhere_n to_o the_o one_o some_o to_o the_o other_o but_o all_o of_o they_o confer_v order_n make_v cardinal_n and_o exercise_v papal_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o donatum_fw-la church_n of_o constantinople_n alexandria_n jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o africa_n during_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_a novatian_a heresy_n and_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n there_o be_v successive_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n together_o in_o they_o and_o other_o city_n the_o one_o orthodox_n the_o other_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a yea_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a canon_n 7._o admit_v the_o novation_n bishop_n which_o conform_a themselves_o to_o the_o church_n and_o renounce_v their_o error_n to_o enjoy_v the_o title_n and_o dignity_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o to_o be_v associate_v with_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n if_o they_o think_v fit_a and_o 499._o st._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o donatists_n bishop_n where_o there_o be_v a_o donatist_n bishop_n and_o a_o catholic_a if_o the_o donatist_n return_v unto_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o bishop_n office_n with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n if_o the_o people_n will_v suffer_v it_o poterit_fw-la quip_n unusquisque_fw-la nostrum_fw-la honoris_fw-la sibi_fw-la socio_fw-la copulato_fw-la vicissim_fw-la sedere_fw-la eminentius_fw-la etc._n etc._n utroque_fw-la alterum_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la mutuo_fw-la praeveniente_fw-la nec_fw-la novum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o he_o there_o define_v therefore_o this_o be_v then_o repute_v no_o novaltie_n platina_n 7._o record_v of_o rhotaris_n king_n of_o the_o lombard_n who_o decline_v to_o the_o arian_n that_o in_o all_o the_o city_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o permit_v there_o shall_v be_v two_o bishop_n of_o equal_a power_n the_o one_o a_o catholic_a the_o other_o a_o arian_n and_o that_o he_o place_v two_o such_o bishop_n in_o every_o city_n 53._o danaeus_n prove_v out_o of_o epiphanius_n that_o ancient_o in_o most_o city_n there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o bishop_n nicephorus_n write_v that_o the_o scythian_n near_o ister_n have_v many_o and_o great_a city_n 758._o all_o of_o they_o subject_n to_o one_o bishop_n but_o among_o other_o people_n we_o know_v there_o be_v bishop_n not_o only_o in_o every_o city_n but_o also_o in_o every_o village_n especial_o among_o the_o arabian_n in_o phrygia_n and_o in_o cyprus_n among_o the_o novatian_o and_o montanist_n yea_o no_o long_o since_o then_o the_o 740._o council_n of_o late_a an_o under_o innocent_a the_o 3d._o there_o be_v divers_a bishop_n in_o one_o city_n and_o diocese_n where_o there_o be_v divers_a nation_n of_o divers_a language_n and_o custom_n which_o though_o his_o council_n disallow_v where_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n yet_o it_o approve_v and_o permit_v where_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n nay_o 537._o those_o canon_n constitution_n and_o decretall_n which_o prohibit_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n or_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v bishop_n in_o castle_n village_n or_o small_a town_n and_o parish_n lest_o the_o dignity_n of_o bishop_n shall_v become_v common_a and_o contemptible_a manifest_a that_o before_o these_o canon_n and_o constitution_n there_o be_v many_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n and_o diocese_n and_o a_o bishop_n in_o every_o little_a castle_n town_n and_o country_n village_n and_o to_o come_v near_a home_n the_o statute_n of_o 26._o h._n 8._o c._n 14._o ordain_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o suffragan_a bishop_n exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o diocese_n of_o england_n with_o the_o statute_n of_o 31._o h._n 8._o c_o 9_o 33._o h._n 8._o c._n 31._o 34._o h._n 8._o c._n 1._o which_o erect_v divers_a new_a bishopric_n in_o england_n and_o divide_v one_o diocese_n into_o many_o both_o intimate_a and_o prove_v as_o much_o why_o then_o there_o may_v not_o now_o be_v divers_a bishop_n in_o one_o city_n one_o church_n aswell_o as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o form_n age_n or_o as_o well_o as_o there_o be_v now_o divers_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n in_o one_o kingdom_n divers_a minister_n in_o one_o cathedral_n and_o parish_n church_n i_o can_v yet_o conceive_v unless_o bishop_n will_v now_o make_v themselves_o such_o absolute_a lordly_a monarch_n and_o king_n as_o can_v admit_v of_o any_o 1._o equal_n or_o corrivall_n with_o they_o and_o be_v more_o ambitious_a proud_a vayneglorious_a covetous_a unsociable_a than_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a time_n who_o successor_n they_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o word_n though_o they_o disclay_v i_o they_o utter_o in_o their_o manner_n lordlines_n pomp_n and_o supercilious_a deportment_n which_o they_o will_v not_o lay_v down_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n i_o shall_v conclude_v this_o with_o that_o notable_a speech_n of_o saint_n 783._o augustine_n and_o those_o other_o almost_o 300._o bishop_n who_o be_v content_a to_o lay_v down_o their_o bishoprik_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n et_fw-la non_fw-la perdere_fw-la sed_fw-la deo_fw-la tutius_fw-la comendare_fw-la an_fw-mi vero_fw-la redemptor_n noster_fw-la de_fw-la caelis_fw-la inhumana_fw-la membra_fw-la descendit_fw-la ut_fw-la membra_fw-la eius_fw-la esseââus_fw-la et_fw-la nos_fw-la ne_fw-la ipsa_fw-la eius_fw-la membra_fw-la crudeli_fw-la divisione_n lanientur_fw-la de_fw-la cathedris_fw-la descendere_fw-la formidamus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la propter_fw-la christianos_n populos_fw-la ordinamur_fw-la quod_fw-la ergo_fw-la christianis_fw-la populis_fw-la ad_fw-la christianam_fw-la pacem_fw-la prodest_fw-la hoc_fw-la de_fw-la nostro_fw-la episcopatu_fw-la faciamus_fw-la quod_fw-la sum_fw-la propter_fw-la te_fw-la sum_fw-la si_fw-la tibi_fw-la prodest_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la si_fw-la tibi_fw-la obest_fw-la si_fw-mi servi_n utiles_fw-la sumus_fw-la cur_n domnini_n aeternis_fw-la lucris_fw-la pro_fw-la nostris_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la sublimitatibus_fw-la invidemus_fw-la episcopalis_fw-la dignitas_fw-la fructuosior_fw-la nobis_fw-la erit_fw-la si_fw-la gregem_fw-la christi_fw-la deposita_fw-la magis_fw-la collegerit_fw-la quam_fw-la retenta_fw-la disperserit_fw-la fratres_n mei_fw-la si_fw-la dominum_fw-la cogitamus_fw-la locus_fw-la ille_fw-la altior_fw-la specula_fw-la vinitoris_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la fastigium_fw-la superbientis_fw-la sicum_n nolo_fw-la retinere_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la meum_fw-la dispergo_fw-la gregem_fw-la christi_fw-la quomodo_fw-la est_fw-la damnum_fw-la gregis_fw-la honour_n pastoris_fw-la nam_fw-la qua_fw-la front_n in_fw-la futuro_fw-la seculo_fw-la promissum_fw-la a_o christo_fw-la sperabimus_fw-la honorem_fw-la si_fw-la christianam_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la seculo_fw-la noster_fw-la honour_n impedit_fw-la unitatem_fw-la to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v as_o a_o corollary_n a_o like_a speech_n of_o that_o holy_a devout_a man_n s._n bernard_n 330._o
exempt_v from_o archiepiscopall_a &_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v unite_v and_o annex_v as_o a_o royal_a prerogative_n to_o the_o king_n imperial_a crown_n and_o to_o be_v execute_v by_o none_o but_o by_o patent_n under_o he_o and_o that_o all_o your_o citation_n process_n excommunication_n probates_n of_o will_n commission_n of_o administration_n etc._n etc._n ought_v to_o be_v make_v only_o in_o his_o majesty_n name_n and_o seal_v with_o his_o seal_n as_o they_o be_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o and_o king_n edward_n day_n witness_v the_o bishop_n register_n process_n and_o probates_n of_o will_n in_o their_o two_o reign_v and_o now_o be_v in_o your_o high-commission_n that_o so_o both_o the_o court_n and_o process_n migth_n be_v 98._o know_v to_o be_v his_o majesty_n by_o leave_v his_o image_n stile_n and_o superscription_n engrave_v on_o they_o and_o to_o be_v derive_v unto_o you_o not_o by_o any_o divine_a right_n but_o by_o his_o princely_a grace_n alone_o who_o have_v as_o absolute_a a_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n as_o any_o of_o his_o royal_a progenitor_n enjoy_v both_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o 1._o of_o the_o realm_n so_o they_o will_v enforce_v your_o lordship_n to_o acknowledge_v unless_o you_o will_v renounce_v your_o allegiance_n to_o your_o most_o gracious_a sovereign_n who_o mere_a grace_n have_v advance_v you_o to_o what_o you_o now_o be_v that_o all_o your_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n whereby_o you_o be_v distinguish_v from_o or_o elevate_v above_o any_o ordinary_a presbyter_n and_o minister_n be_v not_o from_o any_o divine_a charter_n or_o commission_n from_o christ_n but_o king_n only_o in_o by_z from_o and_o under_o his_o majesty_n and_o so_o not_o jure_v divino_fw-la as_o you_o have_v thus_o frequent_o crake_v and_o boast_v to_o the_o world_n so_o as_o you_o must_v either_o now_o forthwith_o renounce_v your_o bishoprike_n according_a to_o your_o protestation_n or_o else_o be_v guilty_a of_o breach_n of_o promise_n unless_o you_o can_v prove_v you_o enjoy_v they_o only_o by_o a_o divine_a right_n and_o yet_o only_o in_o by_z from_o and_o under_o his_o majesty_n which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n if_o your_o lord_n to_o maintain_v your_o divine_a pretend_a episcopal_a jurisdiction_n shall_v fly_v to_o 44._o doctor_n john_n pocklington_n for_o aid_n who_o by_o bray_n one_o of_o your_o domestic_a chaplain_n approbation_n have_v very_o publish_v in_o print_n that_o you_o by_o god_n mercy_n to_o our_o church_n be_v able_a lineal_o to_o set_v down_o your_o succession_n in_o your_o episcopal_a dignity_n from_o s._n peter_n chair_n at_o rome_n to_o s._n gregory_n and_o from_o he_o from_o our_o first_o archbishop_n s._n augustine_n though_o we_o have_v many_o 82._o archbishop_n before_o his_o come_n our_o english_a apostle_n so_o the_o papist_n will_v have_v he_o style_v though_o 24._o bishop_n 120._o lewel_n fox_n and_o 9_o other_o renounce_v he_o downward_o to_o his_o giver_n that_o now_o sit_v in_o his_o chair_n primate_n and_o metropolitan_a of_o all_o england_n i_o shall_v then_o desire_v your_o lordship_n and_o this_o doctor_n to_o prove_v first_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v a_o bishop_n by_o divine_a institution_n second_o that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o this_o doctor_n be_v so_o impatient_a that_o he_o break_v out_o unto_o 43._o these_o passionate_a word_n well_o worthy_a your_o episcopal_a censure_n whereby_o answer_v their_o vanity_n may_v appear_v that_o upon_o idle_a ghess_n against_o all_o antiquity_n make_v fool_n believe_v that_o s._n peter_n which_o as_o peter_n never_o at_o rome_n mk_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n as_o questionable_a as_o the_o centurist_n order_n three_o wheter_n peter_n be_v sole_a bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o rather_o paul_n also_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o he_o at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o that_o by_o divine_a institution_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v 3_o how_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o of_o canterbury_n at_o the_o same_o time_n not_o one_o alone_a as_o two_o several_a person_n at_o least_o to_o constitute_v one_o bishop_n four_o whether_o it_o will_v follow_v from_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o york_n most_o necessary_o be_v archbishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la five_o whether_o if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a this_o proposition_n can_v be_v deny_v that_o your_o lordship_n be_v lineal_o descend_v from_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v both_o the_o true_a and_o genuine_a son_n and_o member_n of_o these_o two_o ghostly_a parent_n if_o you_o deny_v this_o inference_n than_o you_o must_v renounce_v this_o divine_a title_n to_o your_o prelacy_n if_o you_o subscribe_v unto_o it_o as_o i_o presume_v you_o dare_v not_o than_o all_o his_o majesty_n loyal_a subject_n who_o have_v in_o their_o 1._o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n renounce_v all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n abandon_v by_o rome_n several_a act_n of_o parliament_n must_v renounce_v both_o you_o and_o this_o your_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n to_o thus_o claim_v which_o since_o you_o can_v no_o way_n substantial_o prove_v to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la i_o hope_v you_o will_v now_o lay_v down_o your_o bishopriche_n according_a to_o provise_v or_o else_o be_v thoughânever_o worthy_a faith_n or_o credit_n more_o in_o future_a time_n neither_o may_v the_o seem_a strangeness_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o deter_v you_o from_o it_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o bishop_n to_o resign_v and_o give_v over_o their_o bishoprike_n for_o not_o to_o mention_v that_o famous_a 223._o gregory_n nazianzen_n that_o great_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n or_o p_o hiârax_n 11._o john_n of_o antioch_n with_o sundry_a other_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o either_o out_o of_o conscience_n or_o for_o quietness_n sake_n voluntary_o renounce_v or_o repudiate_v their_o bishoprike_n betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o more_o retire_a private_a life_n wherein_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n better_o nor_o yet_o to_o recite_v the_o history_n of_o 23._o ammonius_n who_o when_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n elect_v he_o for_o their_o bishop_n and_o urge_v he_o to_o take_v a_o bishopric_n upon_o he_o flee_v away_o secret_o and_o cut_v off_o his_o right_a ear_n that_o the_o deformity_n of_o his_o body_n may_v be_v a_o canonical_a impediment_n to_o his_o election_n and_o be_v yet_o deem_v meet_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n by_o timotheus_n the_o patriarch_n though_o his_o nose_n and_o ear_n have_v be_v both_o cut_v off_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o learning_n and_o virtue_n and_o the_o people_n drown_fw-mi he_o against_o his_o will_n to_o accept_v that_o office_n he_o reply_v that_o he_o will_v likewise_o cut_v off_o his_o tongue_n to_o which_o please_v they_o unless_o they_o will_v specdy_o let_v he_o go_v nor_o yet_o to_o remember_v 37._o euagrius_n the_o philosopher_n who_o when_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o accept_v a_o bishopric_n by_o theophilus_n alexandrinus_n renounce_v his_o ministry_n rather_o than_o he_o will_v accept_v it_o such_o a_o dangerous_a and_o ill_a office_n do_v he_o then_o repute_v it_o and_o many_o good_a man_n else_o who_o as_o nicephorus_n record_v refuse_v ancient_o to_o accept_v thereof_o though_o nothing_o so_o dangerous_a and_o pernicious_a a_o office_n then_o as_o now_o or_o nicephorus_n 982._o blemmides_n who_o be_v elect_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n absolute_o refuse_v to_o accept_v it_o upon_o any_o term_n or_o 599._o werinbaldus_n unanimous_o elect_a bishop_n of_o spier_n who_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v induce_v to_o embrace_v it_o or_o 644._o theophilâus_a archdeacon_n of_o adaina_n who_o be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_v refuse_v to_o receive_v it_o and_o be_v force_v both_o by_o the_o minister_n and_o people_n to_o take_v it_o against_o his_o will_n relinquish_v it_o short_o after_o though_o in_o a_o idle_a manner_n i_o find_v it_o record_v of_o 983._o arsenius_n germanus_n paulus_n cyprius_n josephus_n becus_n gregorius_n cyprius_n athanasius_n john_n joannes_n glicis_fw-la antonius_n studites_n cosmas_n and_o theodosius_n all_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n as_o likewise_o of_o 1146._o gildenutus_n bishop_n of_o malden_n vlfranius_n bishop_n of_o shetne_n arnulphus_n bishop_n of_o mets_n addo-bishop_n of_o lion_n victerbus_n bishop_n of_o ratisbon_n herigerus_fw-la bishop_n of_o meniz_n michael_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n adelberus_n bishop_n of_o wirtenburg_n michael_n opites_n patriarch_n of_o athens_n desiderius_n bishop_n of_o flaunders_n bruno_n the_o three_o bishop_n of_o colen_n vlrious_a the_o second_o bishop_n of_o constance_n walther_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n gerhardus_fw-la bishof_n herbipolis_n vlricus_n bishop_n of_o rhesia_n brincingus_n bishop_n of_o hildeshem_n conrade_n the_o second_o bishop_n of_o lubeck_n adam_n bishop_n of_o morini_n in_o flaunders_n christianus_n the_o second_o bishop_n of_o
marcte_n sebotho_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n everhardus_fw-la bishop_n of_o reform_v vlricus_n bishop_n of_o saltsburg_n conradus_n bishop_n of_o hildesheim_n conradus_n bishop_n of_o halberstat_n ludolphus_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o see_v gunterus_n bishop_n of_o magdeburge_n josia_n odolpleus_n archbishop_n of_o vpsal_n ãâ¦ã_z in_o s_o ãâ¦ã_z hland_n with_o sundry_a other_o patriarch_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n many_o of_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o age_n or_o sickness_n other_o out_o of_o discontent_n other_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n of_o peace_n quietness_n and_o case_n from_o unnecessary_a care_n and_o trouble_n other_o of_o they_o mere_o out_o of_o conscience_n of_o the_o unlawfulnesse_n danger_n hurt_n and_o sin_n accompany_v the_o very_a office_n of_o bishop_n as_o then_o it_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v use_v have_v voluntary_o renounce_v revive_v relinquish_v their_o patriarkship_n archbishoprike_v and_o bishoprike_v and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o more_o retire_v religious_a quiet_a private_a godly_a life_n wherein_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n better_o and_o show_v those_o manifold_a occasion_n of_o evil_a and_o temptation_n unto_o which_o their_o episcopal_a function_n will_v express_v they_o both_o a_o hazard_n of_o their_o soul_n if_o these_o many_o foreign_a example_n will_v no_o way_n move_v your_o lordship_n as_o seem_v over_o strange_a we_o have_v many_o pregnant_a domestic_a precedent_n of_o like_a nature_n which_o may_v persuade_v you_o to_o make_v good_a your_o promise_n and_o induce_v you_o to_o a_o imitation_n of_o they_o for_o i_o find_v that_o 676._o robert_n gemetiensis_n s._n edmund_n boniface_n and_o robert_n kalwarby_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n richard_n beaveye_v and_o william_n de_fw-fr sancta_fw-la maria_fw-la bishop_n of_o london_n john_n bokingham_n and_o philip_n ripingdon_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n richard_n peche_n and_o roger_n de_fw-fr weseham_n bishop_n of_o coventre_n and_o lichfeild_n herman_n bishop_n of_o sherborne_n shaxton_n bishop_n of_o sabisbury_n william_n warm_a john_n voysy_n and_o miles_n coverdale_n who_o be_v deprive_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n care_v not_o to_o return_v to_o his_o bishopric_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n settle_v himself_o in_o london_n and_o there_o lead_v a_o private_a life_n as_o a_o ordinary_a minister_n bishop_n of_o exeter_n john_n carpenter_n and_o master_n hugh_n latimer_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n the_o late_a of_o who_o edward_n skip_v for_o joy_n when_o he_o have_v cast_v off_o his_o rochet_n for_o that_o he_o be_v ease_v of_o so_o heavy_a a_o burden_n and_o bless_a god_n that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o grace_n to_o make_v himself_o a_o quondam_a bishop_n ralph_n the_o maydestan_n bishop_n of_o hereford_n putta_fw-mi quickhelmus_fw-la and_o haymo_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n the_o first_o of_o they_o become_v a_o schoolmaster_n spend_v the_o residue_n of_o his_o day_n in_o that_o kind_n of_o life_n and_o can_v never_o abide_v to_o hear_v of_o return_v to_o his_o bishopric_n dubricius_n bishop_n of_o carleon_n sulghein_n bishop_n of_o s._n david_n john_n hunden_n bishop_n of_o landaffe_n caducanus_n bishop_n of_o bangor_n elguensis_n bishop_n of_o s._n assaph_n colman_n s._n cuthbert_n egelrit_n and_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr farnham_n bishop_n of_o lindesfarne_n and_o durham_n the_o late_a of_o who_o first_o of_o all_o twice_o refuse_v and_o then_o at_o last_o resign_v his_o bishopric_n out_o of_o conscience_n paulinus_n the_o leede_v who_o peremptory_o refuse_v out_o of_o conscience_n to_o accept_v the_o bishopric_n of_o carlisle_n though_o thereunto_o elect_v and_o earnest_o entreat_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o to_o accept_v the_o place_n who_o offerâ_n he_o 300._o mark_v yearly_a revenue_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o live_n there_o as_o do_v sylvester_n the_o everdon_n for_o a_o time_n to_o walter_n malclerke_n bishop_n of_o carlisle_n cedda_n coena_fw-la alias_o albert_n athelwold_n thurstan_n william_n wickwane_o archbishop_n of_o york_n who_o all_o voluntary_o most_o out_o of_o conscience_n some_o out_o of_o choler_n other_o for_o their_o ease_n some_o for_o their_o age_n other_o for_o other_o cause_n best_a know_v to_o themselves_o resign_v both_o these_o their_o archbishop_n and_o bishoprike_n be_v so_o many_o domestic_a precedent_n to_o your_o lordship_n who_o have_v long_o since_o give_v over_o the_o main_a part_n of_o your_o episcopal_a function_n preach_v now_o to_o do_v the_o like_a according_a to_o your_o joint_n and_o several_a promise_n in_o case_n you_o can_v prove_v your_o archiepiscopall_a and_o episcopal_a lurisdiction_n lure_n divino_fw-la and_o give_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o these_o few_o paper_n which_o i_o presume_v you_o can_v never_o do_v since_o not_o only_o 3._o hieron_n 3._o ambrose_n 1._o chrysostom_n 101._o augustine_n 28._o sedulius_n remigius_n primasius_n theodoret_n haymo_n beda_n rabanus_n maurus_n theophilact_fw-mi 7._o isidor_n hispalensis_n 36._o alcuminus_fw-la 7_o oecumenius_n 7._o gratian_n the_o counsel_n of_o carthagâ_n 4._o conâ_n 22._o to_o 26._o of_o aquisgran_n c._n 8._o 10._o 11._o 144._o iuo_o camotensis_n 24._o peter_n lombard_n 3._o bruno_n and_o 28._o other_o ancient_a but_o even_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n richard_n archbishop_n of_o ardmagh_n all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n in_o 37._o h._n 8._o in_o their_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n chapter_n of_o order_n subscribe_v with_o all_o their_o name_n stokesly_a bishop_n of_o london_n tonstall_n bishop_n of_o durham_n reginald_n peacocke_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n bishop_n hooper_n bishop_n latimer_n bishop_n jewel_n bishop_n alley_n but_o even_o archbishop_n whitgift_n himself_o and_o bishop_n bridges_n to_o omit_v wickliff_n swinderby_n walter_n brute_n s._n john_n oldcastle_n master_n john_n lambert_n master_n john_n bradford_n and_o other_o our_o martyr_n master_n thomas_n beacon_n master_n john_n fox_n master_n alexander_n novel_a doctor_n whitaker_n doctor_n humphrey_n doctor_n willet_n doctor_n agray_n doctor_n taylor_n doctor_n ames_n doctor_n raynolds_n doctor_n fulke_n and_o other_o in_o book_n their_o authorize_v write_n print_v here_o in_o england_n cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la and_o public_a allowance_n with_o the_o forecited_a statute_n of_o our_o realm_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n patent_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6._o in_o express_a term_n conclude_v your_o archiepiscopall_a and_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n to_o over_o other_o minister_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a human_a invention_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o prevent_v or_o rather_o as_o the_o event_n have_v ever_o since_o prove_v to_o engender_v foment_n &_o occasion_n all_o schism_n faction_n error_n and_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n when_o as_o 28._o christ_n himself_o and_o 14_o his_o apostle_n since_o ordain_v a_o parity_n a_o equality_n both_o among_o his_o apostle_n and_o minister_n and_o ever_o institute_v many_o bishop_n elder_n over_o every_o particular_a church_n but_o never_o any_o one_o bishop_n or_o minister_n over_o many_o as_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n and_o root_n out_o sin_n occasion_v only_o by_o the_o pride_n ambitious_a couvetousnesse_n power_n and_o tyranny_n of_o domineer_a prelate_n thus_o crave_v pardon_n for_o my_o boldness_n in_o press_v your_o lordship_n like_o two_o honest_a plain_a deal_n man_n to_o make_v good_a your_o word_n that_o so_o we_o may_v once_o again_o become_v fellow-brethren_n and_o walk_v hand_n in_o hand_n together_o like_a equal_n purpose_n without_o that_o infinite_a lordly_a distance_n which_o be_v now_o between_o we_o i_o take_v my_o leave_n and_o rest_v your_o lordship_n faithful_a monitor_n a._n b._n c._n a_o brief_a exhortation_n to_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o present_a pestilence_n my_o lord_n for_o so_o you_o style_v sabbath-day_n yourselves_o and_o will_v be_v entitle_v by_o all_o man_n notwithstanding_o the_o 3_o lord_n own_o inhibition_n to_o the_o contrary_a the_o prophet_n isaiah_n c._n 26._o 9_o have_v inform_v i_o that_o when_o god_n judgement_n be_v on_o the_o earth_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n will_v learn_v righteousness_n and_o who_o know_v whither_o your_o lordship_n as_o proper_o inhabitant_n if_o not_o servant_n and_o lover_n to_o of_o the_o world_n as_o any_o of_o what_o ever_o profession_n though_o you_o 10._o shall_v not_o be_v so_o may_v not_o now_o in_o this_o time_n of_o pestilence_n when_o god_n judgement_n be_v everywhere_o so_o rife_o among_o we_o learn_fw-mi righteousness_n as_o well_o as_o other_o if_o you_o think_v not_o yourselves_o to_o wise_a to_o learn_v to_o old_a to_o be_v instruct_v if_o any_o man_n will_v but_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o teach_v you_o harken_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o as_o you_o tender_v either_o the_o preservation_n of_o your_o life_n in_o this_o time_n of_o mortality_n or_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n or_o the_o life_n and_o soul_n of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n commit_v to_o your_o pastoral_a charge_n to_o a_o short_a
deal_v treacherous_o with_o his_o people_n yet_o consider_v now_o that_o the_o time_n be_v draw_v near_o wherein_o tractat._n you_o may_v be_v recompense_v with_o the_o like_a usage_n as_o the_o prophet_n isai_n threaten_v â _o wo_n to_o thou_o that_o spoyle_v and_o thou_o that_o be_v not_o spoil_v and_o deal_v treacherousl_o and_o they_o deal_v not_o treacherous_o with_o thou_o when_o thou_o shall_v cease_v to_o spoil_v thou_o shall_v be_v spoil_v and_o when_o thou_o shall_v make_v a_o end_n to_o deal_v treacherous_o they_o shall_v deal_v treacherous_o with_o thou_o wherefore_o my_o lord_n 27._o break_v of_o your_o sin_n and_o sinful_a proceed_n by_o sincere_a and_o timely_a repentance_n and_o of_o lion_n bear_n tractatus_fw-la wolf_n thief_n and_o robber_n which_o many_o bishop_n have_v degenerate_v into_o become_v 7._o lamb_n and_o shepherd_n to_o god_n people_n and_o now_o at_o last_o 15._o as_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n holy_a and_o belove_a put_v on_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n kindness_n humbleness_n of_o mind_n meekness_n long_o suffer_v forbear_v and_o forgive_a all_o those_o against_o who_o you_o have_v any_o quarrel_n even_o as_o christ_n forgive_v you_o so_o also_o do_v you_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n put_v on_o charity_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o perfectness_n and_o let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o which_o you_o be_v also_o call_v in_o one_o body_n and_o let_v the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v rich_o in_o you_o in_o all_o wisdom_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o you_o will_v divert_v this_o pest_n either_o from_o yourselves_o or_o other_o then_o present_o â _o begin_v to_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n with_o fast_v weep_a and_o with_o mourning_n sanctify_v a_o fast_o call_v a_o solemn_a assembly_n gather_v the_o elder_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o by_o proxy_n but_o in_o proper_a person_n if_o ever_o you_o will_v either_o be_v repute_v the_o priest_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o lord_n weep_v between_o porch_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o say_v spare_v thy_o people_n o_o lord_n etc._n etc._n give_v not_o thy_o heritage_n to_o reproach_n alas_o for_o the_o 16._o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o as_o a_o destruction_n from_o the_o almighty_a shall_v it_o come_v and_o who_o shall_v escape_v it_o and_o that_o your_o fast_n may_v be_v acceptable_a beware_v that_o it_o be_v not_o 14._o a_o fast_o for_o strife_n and_o debate_n to_o smite_v with_o the_o fist_n of_o wickedness_n or_o to_o make_v your_o voice_n to_o be_v hear_v on_o high_a bewarelea_v it_o be_v only_o a_o hang_n down_o of_o your_o head_n like_o a_o bulrish_n and_o off_o lict_v of_o your_o soul_n only_o for_o a_o day_n but_o let_v it_o be_v that_o true_a fast_n which_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o loose_v the_o band_n of_o wickedness_n to_o let_v the_o oppress_v go_v free_a to_o undo_v the_o heavy_a burden_n which_o you_o have_v late_o lay_v on_o minister_n and_o people_n and_o to_o break_v of_o every_o yoke_n wherewith_o you_o like_v lordly_a â _o baron_n have_v clog_v the_o conscience_n yea_o and_o body_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o baronis_fw-la a_o miserable_a bondage_n and_o captivity_n under_o you_o as_o if_o they_o be_v your_o vassal_n not_o brethren_n to_o break_v your_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a to_o bring_v the_o poor_a that_o be_v cast_v out_o yea_o the_o poor_a minister_n and_o christian_n you_o have_v most_o unchristian_o cast_v out_o of_o their_o live_n house_n and_o god_n house_n itself_o throw_v into_o your_o nasty_a prison_n where_o they_o must_v still_o be_v detain_v when_o other_o be_v set_v free_a to_o your_o house_n yea_o to_o their_o own_o house_n live_n and_o god_n house_n again_o to_o clothe_v the_o naked_a to_o draw_v out_o your_o soul_n to_o the_o hungry_a to_o satisfy_v the_o afflict_a soul_n to_o turn_v away_o your_o foot_n from_o the_o sabbath_n from_o do_v your_o pleasure_n on_o god_n holy_a day_n to_o call_v the_o sabbath_n a_o delight_n the_o holy_a of_o the_o lord_n honourable_a to_o honour_n god_n alone_o therein_o not_o do_v your_o own_o way_n not_o find_v your_o own_o pleasure_n nor_o speak_v your_o own_o word_n if_o thus_o you_o now_o fast_o and_o do_v peradventure_o you_o may_v be_v spare_v in_o this_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n great_a wrath_n and_o god_n will_v make_v our_o health_n to_o spring_v forth_o speedy_o but_o if_o you_o forbear_v to_o do_v it_o and_o proceed_v on_o as_o you_o have_v do_v be_v sure_a 9_o that_o god_n will_v visit_v you_o for_o these_o thing_n and_o that_o his_o soul_n shall_v be_v avenge_v on_o such_o a_o nation_n as_o you_o be_v he_o will_v no_o doubt_n episeopi_n bring_v evil_a upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o escape_v in_o this_o year_n both_o of_o you_o and_o his_o visitation_n in_o which_o as_o you_o have_v most_o strange_o visit_v other_o thrust_v many_o of_o god_n best_a and_o painefull_a minister_n from_o their_o ministry_n in_o sundry_a place_n upon_o mere_a new_a fancy_n and_o article_n of_o your_o own_o against_o law_n and_o justice_n so_o god_n the_o supreme_a visitor_n will_v in_o his_o justice_n visit_v you_o in_o one_o kind_n or_o other_o with_o his_o most_o righteous_a judgement_n &_o cut_v you_o off_o with_o his_o plague_n as_o he_o have_v do_v your_o forecited_a predecessor_n this_o you_o have_v cause_n to_o fear_v and_o serious_o to_o expect_v unless_o you_o forthwith_o become_v new-creature_n loe_o i_o have_v in_o few_o word_n admonish_v you_o if_o you_o amend_v there_o may_v be_v hope_n of_o mercy_n if_o you_o continue_v what_o you_o be_v contemn_v alla_fw-mi dmonition_n 12._o strive_v still_o as_o you_o have_v do_v against_o god_n his_o truth_n and_o people_n you_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a confound_v and_o perish_v you_o shall_v become_v as_o nothing_o and_o as_o a_o thing_n of_o nought_o for_o god_n have_v speak_v it_o and_o he_o 19_o will_v make_v it_o good_a 38._o the_o transgressor_n shall_v be_v destroy_v together_o the_o end_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v cut_v off_o for_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o be_v thou_o shall_v diligent_o consider_v their_o place_n and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v 7._o consider_v what_o i_o have_v write_v and_o the_o lord_n give_v you_o understanding_n in_o all_o thing_n farewell_n whether_o timothy_n be_v ever_o a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n or_o first_o or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n question_n i._o if_o the_o multitude_n or_o common_a receive_a opinion_n may_v take_v place_n or_o our_o prelate_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o this_o controversy_n they_o will_v present_o conclude_v affirmative_o without_o dispute_n that_o timothy_n be_v a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n yea_o the_o first_o and_o sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o ephesian_n but_o if_o the_o scripture_n or_o verity_n may_v be_v umpire_n it_o will_v evident_o appear_v first_o that_o timothy_n be_v no_o bishop_n i_o mean_v no_o such_o bishop_n as_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la be_v different_a from_o a_o ordinary_a presbyter_n in_o dignity_n and_o degree_n much_o less_o bishop_n or_o first_o or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n as_o be_v general_o conceive_v which_o i_o shall_v clear_o evidence_n by_o these_o ensue_a scripture_n and_o reason_n that_o timothy_n be_v no_o bishop_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v apparent_a 1._o first_o because_o s._n paul_n and_o luke_n who_o be_v best_a acquaint_v bishop_n with_o he_o and_o make_v frequent_a mention_n of_o he_o never_o style_v he_o a_o bishop_n neither_o be_v he_o term_v a_o bishop_n in_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o he_o call_v he_o his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o faith_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 2._o a_o good_a minister_n not_o a_o bishop_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 6._o he_o dear_o belove_a son_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 2._o a_o good_a soldier_n of_o jesus_n christ._n 2._o tim._n 2_o 3._o a_o ãâ¦ã_z in_o that_o need_v not_o to_o be_v ashamed_a right_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 11_o in_o his_o other_o epistle_n he_o term_n he_o 1._o thes_n 3._o 2._o rom._n 16._o 21._o his_o brother_n and_o belove_a son_n 1._o cor._n 4._o 17._o 2._o cor._n 1._o 19_o col._n 1._o 1._o a_o workman_n of_o the_o lord_n 1._o cor._n 16_o 10._o a_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n phil._n 1_o 1._o but_o never_o a_o bishop_n s._n luke_n term_v he_o paul_n companion_n minister_n attendant_a and_o fellow-worker_n only_o act_v 16_o 1_o 2_o 3_o c._n 17_o 14_o 15_o c._n 18_o 5_o c._n 19_o 22_o c._n 20_o 4._o never_o so_o much_o as_o intimate_v he_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n the_o scripture_n therefore_o never_o phrase_v he_o a_o bishop_n nor_o give_v he_o that_o title_n among_o all_o his_o other_o epithet_n be_v a_o infallible_a
timothy_n neither_o direct_v he_o any_o part_n of_o his_o speech_n to_o he_o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n send_v for_o to_o miletus_n or_o any_o of_o that_o number_n who_o the_o holy-ghost_n have_v make_v bishop_n of_o that_o flock_n and_o church_n he_o come_v along_o with_o paul_n out_o of_o macedonia_n into_o asia_n to_o troas_n and_o miletus_n acts._n 20_o 3_o 4_o 5_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o none_o of_o the_o number_n of_o elder_n send_v for_o and_o call_v from_o ephesus_n to_o miletus_n to_o who_o this_o speech_n of_o paul_n be_v apply_v therefore_o questionless_a he_o be_v not_o then_o bishop_n muchlesse_a sole_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n as_o some_o groundless_o affirm_v against_o this_o unanswerable_a text_n 9_o paul_n himself_o as_o he_o send_v timothy_n to_o philippi_n troas_n and_o other_o church_n to_o instruct_v confirm_v comfort_n and_o inquire_v of_o their_o estate_n so_o he_o express_o write_v to_o timothy_n 2_o tim._n 4_o 12_o that_o he_o have_v send_v tychicus_n unto_o ephesus_n for_o the_o selfsame_o purpose_n which_o tychicus_n as_o he_o do_v write_v the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o ephesian_n from_o rome_n so_o paul_n in_o that_o very_a epistle_n of_o he_o to_o the_o ephesian_n c._n 6_o v_o 21_o 22_o acquainte_v they_o that_o tychicus_n a_o belove_a brother_n and_o faithful_a minister_n in_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v know_v to_o they_o all_o thing_n who_o say_v he_o i_o have_v send_v unto_o you_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o you_o may_v know_v our_o affair_n and_o that_o he_o may_v comfort_v your_o heart_n so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o particular_a diocesan_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n institute_v by_o paul_n this_o tychicus_n who_o dorotheus_n make_v one_o of_o the_o 70._o disciple_n and_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o bithynia_n be_v more_o like_a to_o be_v the_o man_n than_o timothy_n as_o these_o two_o scripture_n evidence_n 10._o paul_n himself_o make_v mention_v of_o elder_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n rulingwell_n and_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n and_o so_o worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n 1_o tim._n 5_o 17._o which_o elder_n he_o express_o style_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n acts._n 20_o 27_o 28._o these_o therefore_o be_v institute_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n even_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o and_o rule_v feed_v and_o take_v the_o care_n the_o oversight_n of_o that_o church_n by_o his_o appointment_n questionless_a timothy_n at_o the_o selfsame_o season_n will_v not_o be_v bishop_n there_o 3._o three_o as_o timothy_n be_v neither_o a_o bishop_n nor_o bishop_n ephesus_n of_o ephesus_n so_o muchlesse_a be_v he_o the_o first_o or_o sole_a bishop_n there_o as_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o he_o in_o some_o late_a copy_n term_n he_o not_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n for_o as_o that_o church_n be_v first_o plant_v by_o s._n paul_n who_o continue_v therefore_o a_o season_n acts._n 18_o 19_o 20_o c._n 19_o 1_o to_o 41_o c._n 20_o 17_o to_o 38._o 1_o cor._n 15_o 32_o c._n 16_o 8._o 2_o tim._n 1_o 18_o and_o after_o that_o for_o two_o year_n and_o three_o month_n space_n together_o dispute_v daily_o in_o the_o school_n of_o one_o tyrannus_n so_o that_o all_o they_o who_o where_o in_o asia_n hear_v the_o gospel_n acts._n 19_o 8_o 9_o 10_o during_o which_o time_n of_o paul_n residence_n there_o in_o all_o 3._o year_n acts._n 20_o 31_o there_o need_v no_o bishop_n to_o govern_v and_o sway_v the_o church_n neither_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o any_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v there_o constitute_v so_o the_o two_o first_o that_o paul_n leave_v behind_o he_o at_o ephesus_n at_o his_o first_o come_v thither_o to_o instruct_v that_o church_n be_v priscilla_n and_o aquila_n acts._n 18_o 18_o 19_o during_o who_o abode_n there_o while_o paul_n go_v from_o thence_o to_o antioch_n and_o over_o all_o the_o country_n of_o galatia_n and_o phrygia_n in_o order_n strengthen_v all_o the_o disciple_n a_o certain_a jew_n name_v apollo_n bear_v at_o alexandria_n a_o eloquent_a man_n and_o mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n come_v to_o ephesus_n who_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o servant_n in_o the_o spirit_n speak_v and_o teach_v diligent_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o begin_v to_o speak_v bold_o in_o the_o lord_n who_o when_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n have_v hear_v they_o take_v he_o unto_o they_o and_o expound_v to_o he_o the_o way_n of_o god_n more_o perfect_o acts._n 18_o 22_o to_o 27._o so_o that_o aquila_n who_o paul_n leave_v first_o at_o ephesus_n before_o timothy_n and_o apollos_n who_o thus_o preach_v there_o may_v with_o great_a reason_n be_v style_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n than_o timothy_n who_o paul_n entreat_v to_o stay_v there_o only_o at_o his_o last_o go_v into_o macedonia_n acts._n 20_o 1_o as_o 626._o most_o accord_n beside_o we_o read_v that_o paul_n at_o his_o second_o come_v to_o ephesus_n before_o timothy_n be_v constitute_v bishop_n thereof_o find_v certain_a disciple_n there_o all_o out_o 12._o in_o number_n who_o be_v only_o baptize_v into_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n and_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n since_o they_o believe_v baptize_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o when_o he_o have_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v on_o they_o and_o they_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o prophesy_v acts._n 19_o 1._o to_o 18._o which_o 12._o abide_v at_o ephesus_n as_o be_v most_o probable_a by_o acts._n 20_o 17_o 28_o 29_o to_o rule_v and_o instruct_v the_o lord_n flock_v in_o that_o city_n may_v more_o proper_o be_v term_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o ephesian_n than_o timothy_n who_o as_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o so_o muchlesse_a be_v he_o the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o that_o see_v as_o be_v infallible_o evident_a by_o acts._n 20._o 4_o 5_o 15_o 17_o 18_o 28_o 29._o where_o we_o read_v that_o paul_n return_v through_o macedonia_n in_o to_o asia_n to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n there_o accompany_v he_o gajus_n of_o derbe_n and_o timotheus_n with_o other_o where_o timothy_n reckon_v to_o be_v of_o derbe_n not_o ephesus_n all_o these_o go_v before_o to_o troas_n accompany_v paul_n to_o miletus_n who_o from_o thence_o send_v to_o ephesus_n and_o call_v to_o he_o the_o elder_n of_o that_o church_n to_o miletus_n and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v thither_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o know_v from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o i_o come_v into_o asia_n after_o what_o manner_n i_o have_v be_v with_o you_o at_o all_o season_n etc._n etc._n take_v heed_n therefore_o unto_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n so_o the_o greek_a yea_o the_o latin_a and_o ancient_a english_a translation_n true_o render_v it_o to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n etc._n etc._n from_o whence_o it_o be_v apparent_a first_o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n at_o that_o time_n have_v not_o one_o but_o many_o bishop_n and_o that_o by_o the_o very_a institution_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o timothy_n can_v not_o be_v sole_a bishop_n there_o by_o paul_n institution_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n second_o that_o these_o bishop_n know_v from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o paul_n come_v into_o asia_n after_o what_o manner_n he_o have_v be_v with_o they_o at_o all_o season_n and_o therefore_o in_o all_o likelihood_n be_v appoint_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n at_o the_o very_a first_o plant_n of_o that_o church_n before_o timothy_n be_v settle_v bishop_n so_o that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o bishop_n there_o but_o these_o rather_o before_o or_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o three_o that_o timothy_n be_v then_o neither_o elder_n nor_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n at_o this_o time_n when_o paul_n take_v his_o farewell_n of_o it_o he_o come_v with_o paul_n out_o of_o macedonia_n to_o miletus_n and_o be_v none_o of_o the_o elder_n and_o bishop_n send_v for_o from_o ephesus_z to_o who_o alone_a paul_n direct_v his_o speech_n who_o have_v he_o then_o be_v sole_a or_o prime_a bishop_n of_o that_o see_v paul_n will_v not_o have_v style_v the_o elder_n which_o he_o send_v for_o bishop_n of_o that_o flock_n at_o leastwise_o he_o will_v have_v make_v some_o special_a mention_n of_o timothy_n in_o this_o speech_n of_o he_o and_o give_v he_o some_o special_a instruction_n for_o the_o instruct_n and_o govern_v of_o that_o church_n or_o at_o least_o have_v honour_v timothy_n so_o far_o as_o to_o have_v make_v he_o give_v this_o episcopal_a charge_n and_o instruction_n to_o the_o elder_n and_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o proper_a church_n and_o diocese_n
or_o to_o have_v enjoin_v they_o in_o special_a manner_n to_o reverence_n honour_n and_o yield_v he_o all_o canonical_a obedience_n as_o their_o supreme_a diocaesan_n all_o which_o paul_n utter_o neglect_v or_o forget_v to_o do_v or_o particular_o to_o charge_n timothy_n to_o take_v heed_n to_o or_o feed_v this_o flock_n he_o be_v ofta_n nonresident_a from_o it_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v yea_o make_v such_o haste_n to_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n v_o 16._o that_o he_o can_v not_o spare_v time_n to_o go_v to_o ephesus_n he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n to_o miletus_n to_o give_v they_o these_o instruction_n since_o timothy_n their_o bishop_n be_v then_o present_a with_o he_o to_o who_o he_o may_v and_o will_v no_o doubt_n have_v impart_v they_o without_o further_a trouble_n have_v he_o then_o in_o truth_n be_v bishop_n of_o that_o church_n but_o this_o send_n for_o these_o elder_n in_o his_o haste_n and_o still_v they_o bishop_n of_o that_o flock_n etc._n etc._n without_o any_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o timothy_n who_o be_v none_o of_o the_o elder_n send_v for_o to_o ephesus_n be_v a_o infallible_a evidence_n that_o he_o be_v neither_o bishop_n nor_o first_o or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o that_o city_n add_v we_o to_o this_o that_o when_o paul_n exhort_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n there_o be_v then_o in_o that_o city_n elder_n who_o do_v both_o rule_n well_o and_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n and_o so_o be_v worthy_a double_a honour_n ãâã_d tim._n 5_o 1_o 17_o 19_o now_o these_o very_a elder_n as_o paul_n himself_o affirm_v be_v make_v bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n acts._n 20_o 17_o 28._o therefore_o timothy_n can_v not_o be_v the_o first_o the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o ephesian_n as_o the_o false_a postscript_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o he_o style_v he_o moreover_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n manner_n in_o those_o time_n to_o place_v 304._o many_o bishop_n and_o elder_n in_o every_o church_n not_o to_o constitute_v one_o monarchical_a bishop_n over_o many_o witness_n acts._n 11_o 30_o c._n 14_o 23_o c._n 15_o 2_o 4_o 6_o 22_o 13_o c._n 16_o 4_o c._n 20_o 17_o 28._o c._n 21_o 18_o c._n 22_o 5._o phil._n 1_o 1._o 1_o tim._n 5_o 17._o 1_o pet._n 5_o 1_o 2_o 3_o tit._n 1_o 5_o 7_o jam._n 5_o 14._o hebr_n 13_o 17._o acts._n 13_o 1_o 2._o 1._o cor._n 14_o 29_o 30_o 31_o 32._o 1._o thes_n 5_o 12_o 15_o rom._n 16_o 3_o 9_o 12._o col._n 1_o 7_o c._n 4_o 9_o 12_o 17._o which_o testify_v that_o there_o be_v many_o bishop_n and_o elder_n both_o at_o jerusalem_n corinth_n philippi_n rome_n thessalonica_n colosse_n ephesus_n yea_o in_o all_o other_o church_n in_o crete_n and_o elsewhere_o at_o one_o time_n by_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v teach_v and_o joint_o govern_v as_o by_o a_o common_a council_n of_o bishop_n and_o elder_n as_o 2._o iraeneus_n 8._o ignatius_n 7._o ambrose_n 4._o hierome_n and_o 5._o other_o ancient_n testify_v hence_o 31._o epiphanius_n &_o eusebius_n testify_v that_o paul_n and_o peter_n be_v joint_a bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o the_o same_o time_n &_o 39_o tertullian_n write_v of_o the_o church-governor_n in_o his_o age_n say_v president_n nobis_fw-la probati_fw-la seniores_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o approve_a elder_n not_o one_o diocaesan_n bishop_n be_v precedent_n over_o every_o several_a christian_a congregation_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la he_o affirm_v the_o same_o since_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o ordain_v many_o elder_n and_o bishop_n in_o every_o city_n and_o in_o ephesus_n too_o it_o be_v neither_o possible_a nor_o probable_a that_o timothy_n alone_o shall_v be_v constitute_v sole_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n final_o it_o be_v record_v by_o 3_o iraeneus_n 23_o eusebius_n 46._o nicephorus_n johanne_n metraphrastes_n johannes_n hierome_n joan._n chytraeus_n 1._o baronius_n 86._o and_o many_o other_o quote_v to_o my_o hand_n by_o gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n dissertatio_n de_fw-fr gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la p._n 520._o to_o 526._o that_o s._n john_n the_o belove_a apostle_n after_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n acts._n 15._o resort_v to_o ephesus_n reside_v govern_v and_o instruct_v that_o church_n which_o paul_n have_v plant_v after_o paul_n departure_n thence_o with_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n thereunto_o adjoin_v even_o till_o trajane_n day_n and_o that_o though_o he_o be_v banish_v thence_o by_o domitian_n for_o a_o season_n yet_o after_o his_o exile_n he_o return_v thither_o again_o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o that_o church_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o banishment_n revel_v 2._o 1._o which_o he_o name_v before_o all_o the_o other_o church_n of_o asia_n if_o s._n john_n then_o keep_v his_o residence_n at_o ephesus_n and_o rule_v that_o church_n by_o his_o apostolical_a power_n even_o till_o trajane_n day_n how_o can_v timothy_n be_v sole_a bishop_n and_o superintendent_n there_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o bishop_n where_o a_o apostle_n be_v present_a and_o resident_a to_o govern_v by_o who_o divine_a superior_a authority_n and_o presence_n all_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v suspend_v to_o close_v up_o this_o particular_a point_n isag_n bucolcerus_fw-la timatheo_n fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la the_o 626._o centuary_a writer_n and_o 10._o some_o other_o record_v that_o timothy_n survive_v s._n john_n live_v till_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 108._o and_o be_v then_o martyr_v in_o the_o three_o persecution_n under_o trajan_n or_o under_o nero_n or_o domitian_n if_o this_o be_v true_a and_o that_o timothy_n continue_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n till_o his_o death_n as_o the_o patriote_n of_o our_o prelate_n affirm_v then_o by_o their_o own_o doctrine_n it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o timothy_n be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n which_o they_o interpret_v to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n to_o who_o s._n john_n write_v rev._n 2._o 1._o 5._o charge_v he_o that_o he_o have_v leave_v his_o first_o love_n and_o therefore_o admonish_v he_o to_o remember_v whence_o he_o be_v fall_v to_o repent_v and_o do_v the_o first_o work_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a nor_o probable_a that_o timothy_n a_o man_n so_o pious_a so_o laborious_a so_o vigilant_a and_o so_o much_o applaud_v by_o paulin_n most_o of_o his_o epistle_n shall_v be_v this_o backslide_a angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n which_o the_o content_n of_o our_o authorize_v bibles_n to_o omit_v all_o 485_o other_o commentator_n of_o the_o last_o translation_n affirm_v to_o be_v the_o minister_n not_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n as_o some_o apostatise_v prelate_n gloss_n it_o therefore_o from_o thence_o and_o all_o other_o the_o premise_n i_o may_v now_o safe_o conclude_v that_o timothy_n be_v not_o a_o bishop_n nor_o yet_o the_o first_o sole_z diocesan_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n as_o our_o prelate_n groundless_o affirm_v who_o allegation_n to_o the_o contrary_n i_o shall_v next_o propose_v and_o refel_v that_o so_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v more_o perspicuous_a object_n ãâã_d the_o first_o allegation_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n when_o paul_n write_v the_o first_o epistle_n to_o he_o be_v the_o postscript_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n which_o run_v thus_o the_o second_o epistle_n unto_o timotheus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n be_v write_v from_o rome_n when_o paul_n be_v bring_v before_o nero_n the_o second_o time_n hence_o sermon_n bishop_n white_a and_o other_o conclude_v timothy_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n answer_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o postscript_n be_v no_o scripture_n &_o all_o other_o as_o in_o 499._o m._n perkins_n work_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a no_o part_n of_o the_o epistle_n no_o appendix_n of_o s._n paul_n but_o a_o private_a observation_n annex_v to_o it_o by_o some_o scribe_n or_o other_o after_o the_o epistle_n write_v without_o any_o divine_a inspiration_n as_o the_o word_n themselves_o demonstrate_v the_o second_o epistle_n unto_o timotheus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n be_v write_v from_o rome_n when_o paul_n be_v bring_v before_o nero_n the_o second_o time_n where_o observe_v first_o that_o this_o postscript_n be_v write_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n but_o of_o some_o three_o person_n as_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o it_o demonstrate_v second_o that_o this_o postscript_n be_v no_o direction_n give_v by_o paul_n to_o timothy_n as_o the_o word_n the_o second_o epistle_n unto_o timotheus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n be_v write_v &c._n &c._n evidence_n but_o a_o direction_n of_o some_o notary_n or_o christ._n commentator_n to_o the_o reader_n who_o here_o speak_v both_o of_o paul_n and_o timothy_n
not_o his_o second_o the_o postscript_n therefore_o of_o his_o second_o epistle_n be_v no_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v for_o why_o then_o shall_v not_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n style_v he_o a_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o the_o second_o yea_o rather_o than_o the_o second_o since_o the_o first_o have_v much_o matter_n in_o it_o both_o concern_v the_o office_n and_o quality_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o second_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o save_v only_o of_o 2._o diligent_a and_o constant_a preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n which_o belong_v indifferent_o to_o all_o bishop_n and_o minister_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n in_o these_o day_n that_o it_o be_v hardly_o common_a to_o or_o with_o any_o of_o they_o rare_a to_o most_o of_o they_o and_o altogether_o improper_a to_o some_o of_o they_o who_o plough_n like_o the_o dunstical_a bishop_n of_o dunkleden_n think_v it_o no_o part_n of_o their_o episcopal_a office_n and_o that_o they_o be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o ordain_v to_o preach_v but_o rather_o to_o sit_v mute_a and_o domineer_v like_o lord_n and_o that_o preach_v belong_v only_o to_o curate_n and_o inferior_a minister_n not_o to_o lordly_a prelate_n who_o seldom_o climb_v now_o into_o a_o pulpit_n above_o once_o a_o year_n whereas_o chrysostome_n augustine_n ambrose_n cyrill_n hooper_n and_o other_o bishop_n ancient_o preach_v once_o at_o least_o every_o day_n obj._n 2._o the_o second_o allegation_n be_v this_o that_o paul_n describe_v to_o episile_a timothy_n the_o office_n quality_n carriage_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n instruct_v he_o how_o to_o demean_v himself_o in_o that_o office_n 1._o tim._n 3_o 4._o and_o 5._o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o paul_n by_o a_o bishop_n in_o this_o epistle_n mean_v no_o diocaesan_n bishop_n in_o dignity_n and_o degree_n above_o a_o preshyter_n but_o only_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v equal_a the_o same_o and_o no_o way_n different_a from_o a_o elder_a as_o all_o the_o preface_n father_n and_o most_o modern_a expositor_n on_o this_o and_o other_o text_n accord_v such_o a_o bishop_n i_o acknowledge_v timothy_n to_o be_v and_o so_o this_o instruction_n to_o he_o imply_v but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n superior_a in_o dignity_n to_o a_o presbyter_n this_o text_n and_o argument_n can_v evince_v second_o admit_v it_o mean_v of_o a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o thence_o that_o timothy_n be_v such_o a_o one_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v rather_o to_o instruct_v other_o than_o timothy_n who_o be_v so_o well_o tutor_v before_o both_o by_o his_o grand_a mother_n lois_fw-fr and_o paul_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 12._o 20._o c._n 4._o 6._o 14._o 16._o 2._o tim._n 1._o 5._o 6._o 13._o 14._o c._n 2._o 2._o c._n 3._o 10._o 14._o 15._o rather_o for_o a_o pattern_n of_o the_o qualification_n and_o duty_n of_o minister_n to_o direct_v the_o church_n in_o all_o future_a age_n then_o to_o inform_v timothy_n at_o that_o time_n whence_o in_o both_o these_o epistle_n there_o be_v some_o prediction_n of_o the_o apostasy_n and_o degeneracy_n of_o the_o last_o time_n more_o necessary_a for_o 1._o other_o then_o timothy_n to_o know_v 1._o tim._n 5._o 24._o 25._o c._n 6._o 15._o c._n 4._o 1._o to_o 7._o 2._o tim._n 3._o 1._o to_o 10._o three_o there_o be_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n instruction_n give_v concern_v deacon_n widow_n and_o other_o yet_o timothy_n be_v neither_o deacon_n nor_o widow_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o for_o timothy_n also_o to_o know_v as_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o fellow-helper_n and_o assistant_n of_o paul_n in_o his_o ministerial_a and_o apostolical_a function_n and_o as_o his_o delegate_v to_o order_v and_o regulate_v the_o church_n according_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v no_o more_o a_o bishop_n as_o be_v surmise_v then_o that_o every_o minister_n and_o christian_n for_o 21._o who_o instruction_n and_o direction_n this_o epistle_n be_v write_v as_o well_o as_o for_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n or_o then_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n instruction_n to_o their_o archdeacon_n vicar_n general_n chaunceller_n or_o official_o for_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n or_o visitation_n argue_v they_o to_o be_v archbishop_n or_o bishop_n four_o we_o read_v of_o divers_a book_n concern_v the_o office_n and_o regiment_n of_o king_n of_o magistrate_n and_o captain_n dedicate_v to_o young_a prince_n and_o other_o who_o be_v neither_o king_n magistrate_n nor_o captain_n of_o diverse_a tractate_v concern_v bishop_n inscribe_v to_o such_o who_o be_v no_o bishop_n yet_o the_o dedicate_a of_o such_o treatise_n to_o they_o do_v neither_o constitute_v or_o necessary_o imply_v they_o to_o be_v king_n magistrate_n captain_n bishop_n why_o then_o shall_v this_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n wherein_o be_v some_o thing_n concern_v the_o office_n quality_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n prove_v he_o convince_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o obj._n 3_o the_o three_o evidence_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v take_v from_o the_o 1._o tim._n 5._o 22._o where_o he_o be_v enjoin_v to_o lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n that_o be_v to_o ordain_v no_o man_n sudden_o a_o minister_n therefore_o certain_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n because_o none_o but_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n have_v divers_a signification_n in_o scripture_n sometime_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o apprehension_n of_o another_o as_o a_o mal_fw-fr factor_n to_o punish_v or_o bring_v he_o to_o judgement_n for_o his_o offence_n exod._n 24._o 11._o esther_n 8._o 7._o gen._n 37._o 22._o exod._n 6._o 13._o nehem._n 13._o 1._o luke_n 21._o 22._o in_o which_o sense_n it_o may_v be_v well_o take_v here_o as_o the_o proceed_n verse_n evidence_n sometime_o it_o be_v use_v for_o reconciliation_n of_o person_n at_o variance_n job._n 9_o 33._o sometime_o for_o benediction_n or_o blessing_n of_o another_o matth._n 9_o 15._o sometime_o for_o cure_v and_o heal_v mark_n 5._o 23._o math._n 19_o 18._o mark_n 6._o 5._o luke_n 4._o 40._o sometime_o for_o confirmation_n as_o many_o affirm_v act_n 8._o 17._o 18._o 19_o sometime_o for_o ordination_n as_o acts._n 6_o 6_o cap._n 8_o 17._o 11._o cap._n 13._o 3._o 1._o timoth._n 4._o 14._o 2._o timoth._n 1._o 6._o acts._n 19_o 6._o in_o which_o of_o these_o sense_n it_o be_v here_o mean_v be_v 22._o not_o certain_o resolve_v and_o so_o no_o inference_n can_v be_v infallible_o raise_v thence_o second_o admit_v it_o be_v mean_v of_o ordination_n as_o most_o conceive_v it_o yet_o that_o prove_v not_o timothy_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n since_o not_o only_a apostle_n evangelist_n and_o the_o apostle_n fellow-helper_n have_v power_n of_o ordination_n as_o they_o be_v such_o act._n 1_o 22_o 25_o 26._o c._n 6_o 6_o c._n 8_o 17_o 18_o c._n 13_o 1_o 2_o 3._o c._n 14_o 23_o c._n 19_o 6._o tit._n 1_o 5._o 2_o tim._n 1._o 6._o but_o even_a presbyter_n themselves_o acts._n 9_o 17._o c._n 13_o 1_o 2_o 3._o c._n 14_o 23_o 1._o tim._n 4_o 14._o and_o timothy_n may_v exercise_v this_o power_n in_o all_o or_o either_o of_o these_o respect_n not_o as_o a_o bishop_n which_o for_o aught_o appear_v he_o never_o be_v neither_o read_v we_o in_o scripture_n that_o ordination_n belong_v of_o right_a to_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n muchlesse_a that_o it_o be_v appropriate_v unto_o they_o obj._n 4._o the_o four_o objection_n to_o prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v this_o that_o he_o be_v command_v to_o rebuke_v such_o as_o sin_v open_o before_o all_o man_n that_o other_o may_v fear_v 1_o tim._n 5_o 20._o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v that_o the_o argument_n be_v a_o inconsequent_a first_o because_o he_o may_v do_v this_o as_o a_o evangelist_n or_o as_o paul_n associate_n or_o substitute_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n not_o of_o his_o own_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n as_o bishop_n official_o chauncellor_n and_o vicar_n general_n rebuke_n correct_v and_o visit_v other_o not_o in_o their_o own_o name_n or_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n but_o their_o lord_n second_o he_o may_v do_v this_o as_o a_o minister_n every_o minister_n have_v power_n sufficient_a in_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n open_o to_o rebuke_v all_o sin_n and_o sinner_n isaiah_n 5_o 8._o 1_o 2._o tim._n 4_o 2_o 3._o tit._n 1_o 13_o c._n 2_o 15._o mark_n 6_o 18_o 19_o 20._o 2_o sam._n 12_o 7._o three_o he_o may_v do_v this_o as_o a_o private_a christian_a every_o christian_a be_v enjoin_v in_o any_o case_n to_o rebuke_v his_o neighbour_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v
to_o troas_n acts._n 20._o 4_o 5._o and_o from_o thence_o to_o italy_n philippi_n and_o rome_n heb._n 13_o 23._o phil._n 1_o 1_o c._n 2._o 19_o col._n 1_o 1._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 9_o 13._o he_o being_n never_o resident_a at_o ephesus_n for_o aught_o appear_v in_o scripture_n or_o authentic_a story_n after_o paul_n return_n out_o of_o macedonia_n his_o abode_n therefore_o at_o ephesus_n be_v but_o for_o so_o short_a a_o time_n and_o he_o so_o great_a a_o nonresident_a from_o it_o afterward_o can_v possible_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n of_o that_o church_n answ_n 3._o three_o greek_n word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o abide_v be_v oft_o apply_v in_o scripture_n to_o a_o short_a abode_n for_o a_o day_n or_o two_o or_o some_o little_a space_n as_o well_o as_o to_o a_o perpetual_a fix_a residence_n as_o math._n 15_o 32._o mark_v 8._o 2._o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o object_v text_n where_o it_o be_v put_v only_o in_o opposition_n to_o paul_n journey_n into_o macedonia_n in_o respect_n whereof_o timothy_n continue_v at_o ephesus_n till_o his_o return_n may_v be_v true_o say_v to_o abide_v there_o though_o after_o his_o return_n he_o remoove_v thence_o to_o other_o church_n as_o gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n de_fw-fr gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la p_o 502._o to_o 518_o observe_v answ_n 4._o four_o paul_n do_v not_o enjoin_v but_o beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n therefore_o his_o residence_n there_o be_v but_o arbitrary_a at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n not_o coactive_a not_o enjoin_v by_o virtue_n of_o any_o episcopal_a office_n this_o text_n therefore_o can_v prove_v timothy_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n no_o more_o than_o his_o stay_n at_o corinth_n and_o other_o place_n whether_o paul_n send_v he_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o those_o church_n answ_n 5._o final_o admit_v timothy_n to_o be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o ephesus_n sole_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v false_a yet_o this_o make_v nothing_o for_o but_o against_o our_o hierarchicall_a and_o diocaesan_n bishop_n for_o ephesus_n be_v but_o one_o city_n one_o parish_n one_o church_n one_o flock_n and_o congregation_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o acts._n 20._o 17_o 28_o 29_o c._n 18_o 24_o 25_o 26_o c._n 19_o 1._o to_o 18_o ephes_n 1_o 1_o c._n 4_o 4_o 16_o c._n 6_o 21_o 22_o 23._o 1_o tim._n 1_o 3_o c._n 5_o 17_o to_o 23._o rev._n 1_o 20_o c._n 2._o 1._o so_o that_o the_o argument_n from_o this_o example_n be_v but_o this_o timothy_n be_v only_a bishop_n of_o one_o city_n parish_n church_n flock_n and_o congregation_n not_o of_o many_o therefore_o all_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o too_o as_o well_o as_o he_o obj._n if_o any_o object_n that_o the_o city_n of_o ephesus_n be_v a_o diocese_n for_o it_o have_v many_o elder_n therefore_o many_o parish_n and_o several_a congregation_n acts._n 20_o 17_o 28._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 17._o answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v that_o the_o argument_n follow_v not_o for_o first_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n every_o particular_a church_n and_o congregation_n have_v according_o many_o elder_n minister_n and_o deacon_n in_o it_o who_o do_v joint_o teach_v and_o instruct_v it_o and_o likewise_o govern_v and_o order_v it_o by_o their_o common_a counsel_n and_o consent_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o act_n 1._o 14._o to_o 26._o c._n 2._o 1._o to_o 47._o c._n 3._o 1._o c._n 4._o 3._o 8._o 9_o 20._o 21._o 23_o 31._o to_o 37._o c._n 5._o 18._o to_o 33._o 42._o c._n 6._o 1._o to_o 9_o c._n 11._o 29._o 30._o c._n 14._o 23._o c._n 15._o 2._o to_o 23._o 25_o 32._o c._n 20._o 17._o to_o 30._o c._n 21._o 18._o phil._n 1._o 1._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 4._o to_o 14._o c._n 5._o 17_o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o jam._n 5._o 14._o 1._o cor._n 14._o 23._o to_o 33._o ignatius_n epist_n 5._o 6_o 8._o 9_o 10._o 11._o 13._o 14._o policarpus_fw-la epist._n ad_fw-la philippense_n irenaeus_n contra_fw-la haeres_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 2._o l._n 4._o c._n 43_o 44._o tertull._n adversus_fw-la gentes_fw-la apolog._n c._n 39_o hieronymus_n sedulius_n chrysostomus_n primasius_n remigius_n haymo_n kabanus_n maurus_n oecumenius_n theophylact_fw-mi anselmus_fw-la petrus_n lombardus_fw-la and_o sundry_a other_o in_o their_o commentary_n and_o exposition_n upon_o philip._n 1._o 1._o 1._o tit._n 5._o acts._n 15._o and_o 20._o 17._o 28._o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 22._o 23._o 24._o 25._o the_o council_n of_o a_o ãâ¦ã_z en_fw-fr under_o ludovicus_n pius_fw-la can._n 8._o 10._o 11._o the_o 12._o council_n of_o toledo_n can._n 4._o and_o all_o writer_n general_o accord_v second_o we_o at_o this_o day_n have_v many_o prebend_n canon_n and_o minister_n in_o every_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n yea_o in_o every_o college_n in_o our_o university_n and_o elsewhere_o yet_o but_o one_o church_n and_o congregation_n three_o we_o have_v in_o many_o other_o church_n in_o the_o country_n where_o the_o parish_n be_v large_a and_o there_o be_v divers_a chapel_n of_o ease_n many_o curate_n and_o minister_n yet_o but_o one_o church_n one_o parish_n not_o a_o diocese_n neither_o be_v the_o chief_a minister_n either_o a_o bishop_n or_o diocaesan_n though_o he_o have_v diverse_a curate_n and_o minister_n under_o he_o to_o assist_v he_o in_o his_o ministry_n yea_o in_o many_o place_n where_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n no_o such_o chapel_n of_o ease_n and_o the_o parish_n great_a we_o have_v several_a minister_n lecturer_n and_o curate_n in_o some_o 4_o or_o 5_o in_o most_o 2_o or_o 3_o yet_o no_o diocese_n no_o bishopric_n neither_o be_v this_o a_o novelty_n but_o a_o ancient_a constitution_n not_o only_o institude_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o continue_v ever_o since_o but_o likewise_o enjoin_v by_o the_o 134._o council_n of_o oxford_n under_o stephan_n langhton_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 12_o 22._o which_o decree_v that_o in_o all_o parish_n church_n where_o the_o parish_n be_v great_a there_o shall_v be_v 2_o or_o 3_o presbyter_n at_o the_o least_o according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o parish_n and_o the_o value_n of_o the_o benefice_n lest_o that_o one_o only_a minister_n be_v sick_a or_o otherwise_o debilitate_a ecclesiastical_a benefit_n which_o god_n forbid_v shall_v be_v either_o withdraw_v or_o deny_v to_o the_o parishioner_n that_o be_v sick_a or_o willing_a to_o be_v present_a at_o divine_a office_n the_o multitude_n or_o plurality_n therefore_o of_o the_o elder_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v no_o argument_n at_o all_o to_o prove_v that_o be_v be_v a_o diocese_n or_o that_o timothy_n be_v a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n because_o he_o have_v minister_n and_o curate_n under_o he_o for_o than_o our_o deacon_n archdeacon_n and_o pluralist_n who_o have_v many_o live_n chapel_n and_o so_o many_o curate_n and_o minister_n under_o they_o shall_v be_v diocaesan_n bishop_n too_o by_o this_o reason_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o admit_v there_o be_v divers_a church_n and_o congregation_n in_o ephesus_n which_o be_v very_o improbable_a the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o citizen_n be_v idolater_n and_o the_o city_n itself_o a_o worshipper_n of_o the_o great_a goddess_n diana_n and_o of_o the_o image_n which_o fall_v down_o from_o jupiter_n acts._n 19_o 21._o to_o 41._o yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v that_o timothy_n be_v chief_a bishop_n and_o superintendent_n over_o all_o these_o church_n but_o only_o of_o one_o of_o they_o as_o every_o minister_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n be_v a_o minister_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o not_o a_o minister_n and_o bishop_n in_o and_o over_o all_o the_o curche_n of_o england_n but_o in_o and_o over_o his_o own_o parish_n church_n and_o diocese_n only_o for_o paul_n himself_o who_o plant_v that_o church_n and_o 31_o reside_v in_o it_o for_o three_o year_n space_n during_o which_o time_n it_o be_v like_o there_o be_v no_o diocaesan_n bishop_n of_o it_o but_o himself_o express_o call_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n bishop_n and_o overseer_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n own_o institution_n and_o thereupon_o exhort_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o all_o the_o flock_n and_o to_o feed_v and_o rule_v that_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n acts._n 20._o 28._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o since_o therefore_o every_o one_o of_o these_o elder_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n institution_n and_o paul_n resolution_n be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o bishop_n over_o his_o own_o flock_n if_o several_a both_o to_o instruct_v and_o rule_v it_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o timothy_n if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o there_o be_v many_o church_n there_o be_v only_o bishop_n of_o one_o of_o they_o not_o of_o all_o and_o
institute_v only_o at_o first_o by_o 18._o several_a counsel_n and_o prince_n be_v no_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a but_o only_o a_o humane_a institution_n this_o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n in_o their_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n dedicate_v to_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o fol._n 59_o 60._o resolve_n in_o these_o term_n it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v neither_o in_o scripture_n neither_o in_o the_o write_n of_o any_o authentical_a doctor_n or_o auctor_fw-la of_o the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n do_v ever_o make_v or_o institute_v any_o distinction_n or_o difference_n to_o be_v in_o the_o preeminence_n of_o power_n order_n or_o jurisdiction_n between_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o between_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o be_v all_o equal_a in_o power_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o and_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o diversity_n or_o difference_n among_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v devise_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o good_a order_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o either_o by_o the_o consent_n and_o authority_n or_o else_o at_o least_o by_o the_o permission_n and_o sufferance_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o civil_a power_n for_o the_o time_n rule_v for_o the_o say_a father_n consider_v the_o great_a and_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o christian_a man_n so_o large_o increase_v through_o the_o world_n and_o take_v example_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n think_v it_o expedient_a to_o make_v a_o order_n of_o degree_n to_o be_v among_o bishop_n and_o spiritual_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o ordain_v some_o to_o be_v patriarch_n some_o to_o be_v metropolitan_o some_o to_o be_v archbishop_n some_o to_o be_v bishop_n and_o to_o they_o do_v limit_v several_o not_o only_o their_o certain_a diocese_n and_o province_n wherein_o they_o shall_v exercise_v their_o power_n and_o not_o exceed_v the_o same_o but_o also_o certain_a bound_n and_o limit_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o be_v aver_v by_o learned_a bishop_n hooper_n in_o his_o exposition_n upon_o the_o 23._o psalm_n fol._n 40._o who_o say_v that_o archbishop_n be_v first_o ordain_v in_o constantine_n time_n yea_o 616._o archbishop_n whitgift_n himself_o confess_v as_o much_o that_o archbishop_n be_v neither_o of_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a but_o humane_a institution_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o 1620._o patrick_n adamson_n archbishop_n of_o s._n andrew_n in_o scotland_n in_o his_o public_a recantation_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n in_o scotland_n anno_fw-la 1591._o profess_v sincere_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n by_o god_n word_n be_v all_o equal_a and_o the_o very_a same_o that_o the_o hierarchy_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n nullo_n nititur_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la fundamento_fw-la have_v no_o foundation_n at_o all_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v a_o mere_a humane_a institution_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n from_o whence_o the_o antichristian_a papacis_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v both_o its_o rise_n and_o progress_n and_o that_o for_o 500_o year_n last_o pass_v it_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n of_o persecute_v and_o suppress_v the_o truth_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o all_o country_n and_o kingdom_n as_o all_o history_n manifest_v thus_o this_o archbishop_n in_o his_o palinody_n disclaim_v not_o only_a archbishop_n but_o ever_o diocaesan_n bishop_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a but_o only_o of_o humane_a institution_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n give_v over_o his_o archbishopric_n thereupon_o and_o live_v a_o poor_a deject_a life_n this_o be_v then_o grant_v on_o all_o hand_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o titus_n can_v not_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o crete_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o archbishop_n have_v divers_a bishop_n under_o he_o those_o elder_n which_o he_o place_v in_o every_o city_n of_o crete_n be_v no_o other_o but_o bishop_n tit._n 1._o 7._o as_o all_o acknowledge_v and_o archbishop_n be_v not_o institute_v till_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o titus_n day_n for_o these_o reason_n i_o conceive_v that_o titus_n be_v not_o bishop_n of_o crete_n have_v no_o episcopal_a or_o archiepiscopall_a see_v there_o appoint_v to_o he_o which_o learned_a 581._o gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n have_v at_o large_a manifest_v to_o such_o who_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o peruse_v he_o obj._n 1_o if_o any_o object_n 1._o that_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n style_v he_o titus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o cretan_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o as_o this_o and_o all_o other_o postscript_n be_v 333._o no_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o epistle_n as_o 499._o mr._n perkins_n work_v prove_v at_o large_a but_o a_o addition_n of_o some_o private_a person_n since_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o word_n themselves_o in_o the_o preterimperfect_a tense_n and_o three_o person_n it_o be_v write_v to_o titus_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o no_o convince_a authority_n so_o this_o clause_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o cretan_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o postscript_n but_o a_o late_a appendix_n to_o it_o not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o this_o epistle_n which_o the_o father_n follow_v in_o their_o commentary_n in_o few_o or_o no_o ancient_a greek_n latin_a or_o english_a copy_n and_o translation_n of_o this_o epistle_n in_o few_o or_o no_o testament_n or_o late_a commentator_n and_o have_v titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o crete_n it_o be_v like_o paul_n will_v have_v give_v he_o this_o title_n in_o the_o epistle_n where_o he_o style_v he_o titus_n his_o own_o son_n after_o the_o common_a faith_n c._n 1._o v._n 4._o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o postscript_n which_o in_o truth_n be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o some_o other_o perchance_o oecumenius_n his_o addition_n the_o first_o that_o mention_n it_o 1050._o year_n after_o christi_n since_o he_o speak_v of_o bishop_n by_o name_n in_o that_o epistle_n tit._n 1._o 7._o but_o of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o postscript_n of_o timothy_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o postscript_n be_v direct_o false_a for_o it_o say_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v from_o nicopoll_n of_o macedonia_n now_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o 12._o verse_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o this_o very_a epistle_n that_o paul_n be_v not_o at_o nicopolis_n when_o he_o write_v it_o but_o at_o some_o other_o place_n for_o he_o write_v thus_o to_o titus_n when_o i_o shall_v send_v artemas_n unto_o thou_o or_o tychicus_n be_v diligent_a âocome_n unto_o i_o to_o nicopolis_n for_o there_o not_o here_o i_o have_v intend_v to_o winter_n now_o have_v paul_n then_o be_v at_o nicopolis_n he_o will_v have_v write_v thus_o for_o here_o not_o there_o i_o have_v intend_v to_o winter_n there_o be_v ever_o speak_v of_o a_o place_n from_o which_o we_o be_v absent_a here_o only_o of_o a_o place_n present_a the_o postscript_n therefore_o be_v false_a as_o 499._o mr._n perkins_n work_v hence_o conclude_v can_v be_v no_o part_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n nor_o epistle_n none_o of_o paul_n pen_n but_o a_o mere_a ignorant_a appendix_n of_o some_o scribe_n or_o commentator_n of_o after_o time_n and_o so_o no_o solid_a proof_n to_o manifest_v titus_n bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n not_o at_o nicopolis_n when_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v obj._n 2._o if_o they_o second_o object_n that_o paul_n leave_v titus_n in_o crete_n to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v tit._n 1._o 5._o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o bishop_n answ_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a inconsequent_a and_o i_o may_v argue_v in_o the_o like_a nature_n our_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n especial_o those_o who_o turn_v courtier_n counsellor_n of_o state_n and_o nonresident_n leave_v 120._o their_o archdeacon_n chaunceller_n commissary_n vicar_n general_a and_o official_o to_o visit_v order_n correct_v their_o diocese_n and_o to_o set_v in_o order_n those_o ceremony_n altar_n image_n and_o church_n ornament_n which_o be_v well_o want_v now_o too_o much_o abound_v in_o they_o ergo_fw-la archdeacon_n chaunceller_n vicar_n general_a and_o official_o be_v archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o those_o diocese_n the_o king_n send_v his_o judge_n commissioner_n and_o under_o officer_n to_o some_o county_n or_o city_n to_o set_v cause_n county_n people_n arm_n fort_n city_n in_o good_a order_n and_o to_o see_v defect_n in_o these_o supply_v ergo_fw-la judge_n commissioner_n and_o officer_n be_v king_n churchwarden_n ought_v
he_o 34._o to_o consecrate_v aaron_n with_o his_o son_n the_o tabernacle_n and_o altar_n and_o after_o he_o 8._o king_n solomon_n not_o the_o high_a priest_n consecrate_v the_o temple_n altar_n court_n and_o all_o the_o furniture_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o altar_n so_o that_o if_o these_o example_n prove_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v but_o this_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n minister_n church_n altar_n etc._n etc._n appertain_v not_o to_o archbishop_n bishop_n pope_n preiste_n minister_n but_o to_o the_o chief_a temporal_a magistrate_n but_o admit_v that_o moses_n be_v a_o priest_n and_o a_o high_a priest_n and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v preiste_n temple_n altar_n appertain_v to_o he_o in_o that_o regard_n yet_o this_o be_v no_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n shall_v belong_v to_o bishop_n only_o and_o that_o for_o these_o three_o reason_n first_o because_o the_o aaronicall_a priesthood_n be_v 10._o utter_o extinct_a and_o abolish_v by_o christ_n as_o mere_o typical_a and_o ceremonial_a and_o so_o all_o âhe_v appurtenance_n thereunto_o belong_v second_o because_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v no_o emblem_n type_n or_o resemblance_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v many_o changeable_a mortal_a but_o 3._o only_o of_o christ_n our_o true_a high_a priest_n who_o be_v but_o one_o and_o remain_v a_o high_a priest_n forever_o without_o succession_n or_o change_n so_o that_o this_o allusion_n prove_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n to_o belong_v original_o to_o none_o but_o 10._o christ_n our_o 20._o high_a priest_n chief_a shepherd_n and_o 4._o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o the_o 25._o scripture_n express_o resolve_v and_o ministerial_o secondary_o to_o 3._o every_o minister_n of_o christ_n as_o his_o ambassador_n instrument_n and_o vicegerent_n three_o because_o the_o office_n and_o power_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v different_a distinct_a yea_o incompatible_a one_o with_o the_o other_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o deacon_n under_o the_o law_n different_a from_o that_o under_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o 12._o scripture_n and_o 502._o all_o author_n joint_o witness_v the_o one_o of_o they_o therefore_o can_v be_v no_o solid_a or_o convince_a argument_n to_o make_v good_a the_o authority_n jurisdiction_n or_o practice_n of_o other_o so_o that_o this_o council_n and_o constitution_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o the_o divine_a right_n and_o title_n of_o presbyter_n to_o ordain_v or_o for_o the_o bishop_n sole_a monopoly_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o any_o divine_a charter_n from_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n final_o neither_o of_o these_o counsel_n or_o constitution_n simple_o debar_v minister_n from_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n on_o other_o together_o with_o the_o bishop_n which_o they_o too_o ever_o practise_v and_o be_v authorize_v to_o do_v both_o by_o god_n himself_o and_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o but_o from_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o ordain_v minister_n of_o themselves_o alone_o without_o the_o bishop_n who_o can_v ordain_v or_o lie_v hand_n on_o any_o minister_n by_o virtue_n of_o these_o constitution_n without_o they_o since_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o himself_o alone_o can_v impose_v hand_n on_o any_o minister_n without_o their_o assistance_n or_o consent_n nor_o they_o without_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n be_v not_o whole_o and_o original_o vest_v in_o the_o bishop_n by_o any_o divine_a or_o humane_a right_n but_o in_o both_o the_o 299._o council_n of_o aquisgran_n or_o aken_n under_o ludovicus_n pius_fw-la an._n 816._o c._n 8._o out_o of_o isidor_n hispalensis_n de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la officiis_n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o determine_v thus_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v to_o presbyter_n as_o they_o be_v to_o bishop_n for_o they_o be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v consort_n with_o bishop_n in_o the_o confection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o likewise_o also_o in_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n and_o in_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o only_o the_o ordination_n and_o consecration_n of_o clerk_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o bishop_n because_o of_o his_o authority_n lest_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n challenge_v or_o exercise_v by_o many_o shall_v dissolve_v concord_n and_o engender_v scandal_n for_o paul_n the_o apostle_n call_v elder_n and_o priest_n by_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o acts._n 20._o 28._o phil._n 1._o 1._o 1._o tim._n 3._o d._n rabanus_n maurus_n de_fw-fr instit_n clericorum_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 6._o write_v thus_o that_o presbyter_n although_o they_o be_v preiste_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o attain_v the_o top_n or_o high_a degree_n of_o priesthood_n because_o they_o can_v sign_n the_o forehead_n with_o chrism_n nor_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o can_v they_o ordain_v clerk_n in_o sacred_a order_n which_o be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n for_o unity_n and_o concord_n sake_n the_o epistle_n the_o 7._o gradibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o the_o neinth_n tom_n of_o jeromes_n work_n aver_v in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o ordination_n of_o clerk_n and_o consecration_n of_o virgin_n be_v reserve_v only_o to_o the_o high-preist_n or_o bishop_n for_o his_o great_a honour_n and_o tertullian_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la c._n 17._o write_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v the_o bishop_n have_v the_o right_a of_o give_v baptism_n after_o he_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n yet_o not_o without_o the_o bishop_n authority_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o bishop_n have_v not_o the_o sole_a executive_a power_n of_o ordination_n by_o any_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o syllable_n either_o in_o these_o or_o other_o counsel_n or_o father_n but_o only_a by_o canon_n and_o humane_a constitution_n make_v by_o bishop_n themselves_o to_o advance_v their_o own_o honour_n power_n and_o dignity_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n remain_v still_o in_o minister_n and_o belong_v to_o bishop_n only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n by_o divine_a right_n not_o as_o they_o be_v bishop_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o 300._o 9_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o aken_n take_v out_o of_o isidor_n de_fw-fr eccles_n officiis_n l._n 2._o c._n 6._o where_o writing_n of_o bishop_n ordination_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o original_n thereof_o they_o use_v this_o expression_n which_o 4._o h._n rabanus_n maurus_n likewise_o have_v but_o that_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n a_o praecessoribus_n dei_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la by_o the_o preiste_n of_o god_n their_o predecessor_n be_v a_o ancient_a constitution_n for_o the_o holy_a 28._o patriarch_n isaac_n lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o jacob_n bless_v he_o and_o 48._o jacob_n in_o like_a manner_n give_v a_o benediction_n to_o his_o son_n etc._n etc._n where_o the_o council_n and_o father_n both_o affirm_v that_o even_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v ordain_v by_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n not_o bishop_n their_o predecessor_n therefore_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n and_o bishop_n too_o belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o to_o bishop_n only_o as_o presbyter_n not_o bishop_n and_o so_o can_v no_o way_n advance_v they_o in_o jurisdiction_n order_n or_o degree_n above_o minister_n the_o popish_a 965._o council_n of_o trent_n sessio_fw-la 23._o de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la c._n 4._o determine_v that_o bishop_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n and_o that_o they_o can_v confer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n ordain_v minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o do_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o those_o inferior_a order_n have_v no_o power_n to_o do_v and_o can._n 7._o de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o bishop_n be_v not_o superior_a to_o preiste_n or_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n or_o confirmation_n or_o that_o this_o power_n which_o they_o have_v be_v common_a to_o they_o with_o presbyter_n or_o that_o the_o order_n confer_v by_o they_o without_o the_o consent_n or_o call_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v void_a let_v he_o be_v anathema_n loe_o here_o this_o council_n appropriate_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n only_o to_o bishop_n by_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v common_a to_o they_o with_o minister_n and_o in_o this_o regard_n make_v bishop_n superior_a in_o degree_n to_o minister_n yet_o not_o by_o any_o divine_a right_n or_o institution_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n but_o only_a by_o humane_a and_o canonical_a as_o the_o 7._o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o ord._n chemnitius_n well_o observe_v for_o in_o the_o same_o 968._o session_n de_fw-fr
prove_v by_o scripture_n reason_n and_o author_n of_o all_o sort_n that_o none_o which_o read_v these_o passage_n of_o he_o can_v ever_o hereafter_o call_v this_o into_o question_n more_o have_v run_v thus_o long_o abroad_o i_o now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n return_v to_o our_o own_o church_n and_o writer_n the_o book_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n ratify_v by_o two_o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n namely_o 3._o ed._n 6._o c._n 12._o and_o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o and_o subscribe_v to_o by_o all_o our_o prelate_n and_o minister_n 37._o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o 36._o canon_n as_o contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n express_o order_n that_o when_o minister_n be_v ordain_v all_o the_o minister_n present_v at_o the_o ordination_n shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n on_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v and_o the_o 35._o can._n make_v in_o convocation_n by_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n an._n 1603._o prescribe_v that_o the_o bishop_n before_o he_o admit_v any_o person_n to_o holy_a order_n shall_v diligent_o examine_v he_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o those_o minister_n that_o shall_v assist_v he_o at_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o if_o the_o say_a bishop_n have_v any_o lawful_a impediment_n he_o shall_v cause_v the_o say_a minister_n careful_o to_o examine_v every_o such_o person_n so_o to_o be_v order_v provide_v that_o they_o who_o shall_v assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o examine_v and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n shall_v be_v of_o his_o cathedral_n church_n if_o they_o may_v be_v convenient_o have_v or_o other_o sufficient_a preacher_n of_o the_o same_o diocese_n to_o the_o number_n of_o three_o at_o the_o least_o and_o according_a to_o this_o book_n of_o ordination_n and_o canon_n when_o ever_o any_o minister_n be_v ordain_v all_o the_o minister_n there_o present_a join_v with_o and_o assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o la_v on_o of_o hand_n on_o every_o one_o that_o be_v ordain_v so_o that_o both_o by_o the_o establish_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o power_n of_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o right_a of_o ordination_n be_v common_a to_o every_o of_o our_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o to_o our_o bishop_n who_o as_o they_o can_v ordain_v or_o lay_v hand_n on_o any_o without_o the_o bishop_n so_o the_o bishop_n can_v ordain_v or_o lay_v hand_n on_o no_o minister_n without_o they_o so_o that_o the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n rest_v equal_o in_o they_o both_o with_o what_o face_n or_o shadow_v then_o of_o truth_n our_o prelate_n now_o can_v or_o dare_v to_o monopolise_v this_o privilege_n to_o themselves_o alone_o against_o this_o book_n of_o ordination_n their_o own_o canon_n subscription_n yea_o their_o own_o and_o their_o predecessor_n common_a practice_n to_o the_o contrary_n which_o perchance_o their_o overgreat_a employment_n in_o temporal_a business_n &_o secular_a state_n affair_n have_v cause_v they_o whole_o to_o forget_v at_o least_o not_o to_o consider_v let_v the_o indifferent_a judge_n but_o to_o pass_v from_o they_o to_o some_o of_o our_o learned_a writer_n alcuvinus_fw-la de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_n c._n 37._o write_v that_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v ancient_o and_o in_o his_o time_n too_o veritatis_fw-la elect_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n and_o that_o they_o be_v present_a at_o their_o ordination_n and_o consent_n to_o it_o that_o the_o bishop_n consecration_n in_o his_o day_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherein_o two_o bishop_n hold_v the_o gospel_n or_o new_a testament_n over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o a_o three_o utter_v the_o blessing_n after_o which_o the_o other_o bishop_n present_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n be_v but_o a_o novelty_n not_o find_v in_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n nor_o in_o the_o roman_a tradition_n and_o then_o heâ_n prove_v out_o of_o hieroms_n epistle_n to_o evagrius_n and_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o first_o to_o titus_n that_o the_o ancient_a consecration_n of_o bishop_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o their_o election_n and_o inthronization_n by_o the_o elder_n who_o choose_v out_o one_o of_o their_o company_n for_o a_o bishop_n and_o place_v he_o in_o a_o high_a seat_n than_o the_o rest_n and_o call_v he_o a_o bishop_n without_o further_a ceremony_n just_a as_o a_o army_n make_v a_o general_n or_o as_o if_o the_o deacon_n shall_v choose_v one_o from_o among_o they_o and_o call_v he_o a_o archdeacon_n have_v no_o other_o consecration_n but_o such_o as_o the_o other_o deacon_n have_v be_v advance_v above_o other_o only_o by_o the_o election_n of_o his_o fellow-brethren_n without_o other_o solemnity_n by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n presbyter_n do_v not_o only_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n before_o there_o be_v any_o bishop_n elect_v and_o institute_v but_o likewise_o that_o after_o bishop_n be_v institute_v they_o ordain_v and_o consecrate_a bishop_n as_o well_o as_o elder_n and_o deacon_n and_o that_o the_o sole_a ordination_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a and_o pure_a time_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o presbyter_n bare_a election_n and_o inthronization_n of_o they_o without_o more_o solemnity_n so_o that_o the_o other_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n now_o use_v be_v but_o novelty_n anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o expound_v these_o word_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o this_o manner_n he_o call_v that_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n which_o be_v make_v in_o his_o ordination_n which_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v in_o the_o presbytery_n because_o that_o by_o this_o imposition_n of_o hand_n he_o receive_v a_o eldership_n that_o be_v a_o bishopric_n for_o a_o bishop_n be_v oftentimes_o call_v a_o presbyter_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o presbyter_n a_o bishop_n which_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o three_o chapter_n on_o phil._n 1._o 1._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o he_o prove_v to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o that_o by_o his_o resolution_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o power_n of_o ordain_v elder_n and_o bishop_n belong_v to_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o bishop_n our_o english_a apostle_n 11._o john_n wickliff_n and_o his_o coaetanean_a 8._o richard_n fitzralphe_n otherwise_o call_v richardus_fw-la armachanus_fw-la archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o ardmagh_n in_o ireland_n if_o we_o believe_v either_o their_o own_o write_n or_o 57_o thomas_n walden_n who_o recite_v their_o opinion_n argument_n and_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n though_o in_o vain_a to_o refute_v they_o affirm_v and_o teach_v first_o that_o in_o the_o defect_n of_o bishop_n any_o one_o that_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a priest_n be_v sufficient_a to_o administer_v any_o sacrament_n or_o sacramental_n whatsoever_o either_o find_v in_o scripture_n or_o add_v since_o second_o that_o one_o who_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a priest_n may_v ordain_v another_o and_o that_o he_o who_o be_v ordain_v only_o by_o a_o simple_a priest_n ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v of_o his_o presbytership_n or_o to_o be_v ordain_v again_o so_o as_o he_o right_o perform_v his_o clericall_a office_n because_o the_o ordination_n come_v from_o god_n who_o supply_v all_o defect_n three_o that_o mere_a priest_n may_v ordain_v priest_n deacon_n and_o bishop_n too_o even_o as_o the_o inferior_a priest_n among_o the_o jew_n do_v ordain_v and_o consecrate_v the_o high_a priest_n as_o bishop_n consecrate_v archbishop_n and_o the_o cardinal_n the_o pope_n four_o that_o the_o power_n of_o order_n be_v equal_a and_o the_o same_o in_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o that_o by_o their_o very_a ordination_n they_o have_v power_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n to_o administer_v all_o sacrament_n alike_o therefore_o to_o confer_v order_n and_o confirm_v child_n which_o be_v the_o less_o as_o well_o as_o to_o baptise_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o great_a five_o that_o christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n have_v give_v the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v and_o ordain_v priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o confirmation_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o bishop_n now_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o to_o just_a presbyter_n and_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v but_o of_o late_a time_n even_o above_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n reserve_v and_o appropriate_v to_o bishop_n only_o by_o their_o own_o canon_n and_o constitution_n to_o increase_v their_o caesarian_a pomp_n and_o pride_n and_o 1_o waldensis_n himself_o who_o undertake_v to_o refute_v these_o proposition_n say_v express_o that_o no_o man_n hitherto_o âath_v deny_v that_o god_n in_o a_o urgent_a case_n of_o necessity_n give_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n to_o any_o one_o that_o be_v
but_o a_o mere_a priest_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o want_n or_o defect_n of_o bishop_n all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n archdeacon_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n in_o their_o book_n entitle_v the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n subscribe_v with_o all_o their_o hand_n and_o dedicate_v to_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o an._n 1537._o chapter_n of_o order_n and_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o himself_n in_o his_o book_n style_v a_o necessary_a erudition_n for_o any_o christian_a man_n set_v out_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o 32._o h._n 8._o c._n 26._o approve_a by_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o netherhowse_n of_o parliament_n prefaced_a with_o the_o king_n own_o royal_a epistle_n and_o publish_v by_o his_o special_a command_n in_o the_o year_n 1543._o in_o the_o chapter_n of_o order_n express_o resolve_v that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n by_o god_n law_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o excommunication_n belong_v equal_o to_o they_o both_o learned_a martin_n bucer_n in_o his_o book_n of_o recall_v and_o bring_v into_o use_n again_o the_o lawful_a ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o of_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n in_o his_o scripta_fw-la anglicana_n write_v here_o in_o england_n p._n 254._o 255._o 259._o 291._o 292._o 293._o and_o on_o math._n 16._o lay_n down_o these_o conclusion_n first_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n rest_v principal_o and_o original_o in_o christ_n himself_o prince_n of_o pastor_n second_o that_o this_o power_n be_v secondary_o and_o derivate_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o consent_n be_v requisite_a in_o the_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n three_o that_o the_o actual_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o presbyter_n as_o to_o bishop_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o lay_n on_o hand_n and_o that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbyter_n four_o that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n have_v the_o power_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o they_o only_o instrumental_o not_o original_o as_o servant_n to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n fifâly_o that_o the_o examination_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v public_o in_o the_o church_n where_o they_o be_v elect_v to_o be_v minister_n before_o all_o the_o congregation_n all_o which_o he_o prove_v by_o sundry_a scripture_n and_o history_n peter_n martyr_v his_o coaetaman_n regius_n professor_n in_o the_o âniversity_n of_o oxford_n in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6._o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 2._o king_n 2._o 23._o and_o in_o his_o common_a place_n print_v at_o london_n cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la an._n 1576._o class_n 4._o loc._n 1._o sect._n 23._o p._n 849._o write_v thus_o the_o papist_n can_v object_v grievous_a sin_n against_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o oppose_v only_o some_o slight_n that_o i_o say_v not_o ridiculous_a thing_n they_o say_v that_o our_o pastor_n have_v no_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o thence_o they_o endeavour_v to_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v repute_v just_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o congregation_n which_o be_v teach_v and_o govern_v by_o they_o be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o conventicle_n of_o revolter_n and_o this_o they_o say_v as_o if_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v so_o necessary_a that_o without_o it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n when_o notwithstanding_o moses_n consecrate_a aaron_n his_o brother_n and_o his_o child_n offer_v divers_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n on_o which_o no_o man_n former_o have_v lay_v on_o hand_n likewise_o john_n the_o baptist_n bring_v in_o a_o new_a right_n of_o baptism_n and_o administer_v it_o to_o the_o jew_n when_o as_o yet_o no_o hand_n have_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v baptize_v of_o no_o man_n paul_n also_o call_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o journey_n do_v not_o present_o go_v to_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v lay_v hand_n upon_o he_o but_o he_o teach_v in_o arabia_n for_o 3._o year_n space_n and_o minister_v to_o the_o church_n before_o that_o he_o go_v up_o to_o the_o apostle_n his_o antecessor_n as_o himself_o witness_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n we_o reject_v not_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o retain_v it_o in_o many_o church_n which_o if_o we_o receive_v not_o from_o their_o bishop_n we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o for_o they_o will_v not_o confer_v it_o on_o we_o unless_o we_o will_v depart_v from_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o likewise_o bind_v ourselves_o by_o oâth_n to_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n in_o which_o word_n he_o resolve_v first_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v no_o such_o essential_a part_n of_o a_o minister_n ordination_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v omit_v and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v elect_v and_o lawful_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o people_n be_v minister_n lawful_o call_v and_o ordain_v without_o this_o ceremony_n second_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v to_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v minister_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n where_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n only_o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n of_o other_o minister_n be_v lawful_o ordain_v three_o that_o this_o position_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n that_o those_o be_v no_o true_a minister_n who_o be_v ordain_v without_o a_o bishop_n be_v but_o a_o vain_a ridiculous_a popish_a cavil_v our_o prelate_n therefore_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o ground_v both_o their_o own_o and_o titus_n his_o episcopal_a hierarchy_n upon_o it_o learned_a 5._o doctor_n whitaker_n write_v against_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o this_o text_n of_o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o make_v very_o much_o against_o the_o adversary_n for_o from_o this_o place_n we_o understand_v that_o timâthy_n receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n from_o the_o elder_n who_o at_o that_o time_n govern_v the_o church_n by_o a_o common_a council_n and_o against_o 55._o duraeus_n he_o argue_v thus_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n bucer_n and_o other_o be_v presbyter_n and_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n be_v the_o same_o with_o bishop_n therefore_o they_o may_v lawful_o ordain_v other_o presbyter_n doctor_n fulke_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o rhemish_a testament_n annot._n on_o tit._n 1._o sect._n 2._o and_o doctor_n willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_fw-la papismi_fw-la the_o 5._o general_a controversy_n quaest_n 3._o part_n 2._o write_v thus_o although_o in_o the_o scripture_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o elder_n be_v of_o one_o order_n and_o authority_n in_o preach_v the_o word_n etc._n etc._n yet_o in_o government_n by_o ancient_a use_n of_o speech_n he_o be_v only_o call_v a_o bishop_n which_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n call_v chief_a in_o government_n to_o who_o the_o ordination_n or_o consecration_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v always_o principal_o commit_v not_o that_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v only_o to_o he_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n that_o be_v present_a at_o ordination_n do_v lay_v on_o their_o hand_n or_o else_o the_o bishop_n do_v lay_v on_o his_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n we_o differ_v from_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o they_o affirm_v that_o not_o principal_o and_o chief_o but_o sole_o and_o whole_o the_o right_a of_o consecrate_v and_o give_v order_n appertain_v unto_o bishop_n but_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o give_v order_n we_o say_v that_o though_o it_o be_v chief_o in_o the_o apostle_n yet_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n together_o with_o they_o lay_v on_o their_o hand_n acts._n 13._o 3._o 4._o and_o as_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o his_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 6._o so_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o the_o eldership_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o and_o the_o rhemist_n on_o that_o place_n mislike_v not_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o church_n that_o their_o priest_n do_v lay_v on_o their_o hand_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n upon_o his_o head_n that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v what_o else_o do_v this_o signify_v but_o that_o they_o have_v some_o interest_n in_o ordain_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n the_o 4._o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 3._o decree_v thus_o let_v all_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v present_a hold_v their_o hand_n next_o to_o the_o bishop_n hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v again_o can._n 14._o of_o the_o same_o council_n the_o bishop_n must_v not_o give_v order_n but_o in_o the_o presence_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o clergy_n by_o this_o than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v not_o whole_o and_o
sole_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n see_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n be_v wont_a to_o lay_v on_o their_o hand_n likewise_o or_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n so_o that_o the_o elder_n be_v not_o exclude_v doctor_n field_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 27._o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n where_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o durandus_fw-la and_o other_o papist_n that_o the_o power_n of_o consecration_n and_o order_n be_v not_o great_a in_o bishop_n then_o in_o any_o other_o minister_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n not_o by_o any_o divine_a but_o humane_a constitution_n only_o rather_o for_o to_o honour_v the_o bishop_n priestly_a place_n then_o for_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v do_v by_o any_o other_o and_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o confusion_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n conclude_v that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o when_o bishop_n be_v extinguish_v by_o death_n or_o fall_v into_o heresy_n or_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o ordain_v man_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o gospel_n of_o christ_n sincere_o and_o the_o like_a than_o minister_n only_o may_v ordain_v other_o minister_n without_o any_o bishop_n assistance_n and_o master_n cartwright_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o rhemish_a testament_n on_o the_o 1._o tim._n 1._o 14._o sect._n 18._o and_o on_o tit._n 1._o sect._n 2._o prove_n both_o by_o the_o rhemist_n own_o practice_n and_o confession_n by_o the_o 4._o council_n of_o carthage_n cite_v by_o they_o and_o the_o history_n of_o eradius_fw-la his_o ordination_n who_o succeed_v augustine_n to_o which_o six_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o two_o bishop_n be_v call_v and_o by_o the_o text_n of_o timothy_n itself_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n belong_v to_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n which_o he_o manifest_v to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o by_o divine_a institution_n final_o acute_a and_o learned_a doctor_n ames_n in_o his_o bellarminus_n enervatus_fw-la tom._n 2._o l._n 3._o c._n 2._o of_o the_o vocation_n and_o ordination_n of_o minister_n sect._n 4._o etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr ordinatione_fw-la conclude_v thus_o against_o bellarmine_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o ordination_n vocation_n and_o election_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n first_o that_o it_o can_v belong_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la to_o popish_a bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o degree_n because_o they_o themselves_o be_v only_o vel_fw-la juris_fw-la vel_fw-la injuriae_fw-la humanae_fw-la of_o humane_a right_n or_o rather_o injury_n not_o of_o divine_a institution_n second_o that_o the_o very_a act_n of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o divine_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o presbyter_n in_o a_o church_n well_o order_v three_o that_o as_o to_o the_o right_a force_n and_o virtue_n which_o it_o have_v in_o constitute_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n it_o always_o appertain_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o celebration_n of_o matrimony_n receive_v all_o its_o force_n and_o virtue_n from_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o party_n marry_v four_o that_o in_o corrupt_a and_o collapse_a state_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ministry_n and_o order_n fail_v the_o very_a act_n of_o ordination_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o minister_n may_v in_o such_o a_o case_n be_v lawful_o execute_v by_o the_o people_n five_o that_o the_o act_n of_o ordination_n be_v attribute_v to_o presbyter_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o ordain_v ordinary_a minister_n but_o by_o the_o concurrence_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n acts._n 14._o 23._o six_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a counsel_n of_o the_o presbyter_n before_o there_o be_v any_o bishop_n the_o very_a first_o bishop_n be_v not_o ordain_v by_o bishop_n which_o then_o be_v not_o but_o by_o minister_n seaventh_o that_o all_o the_o counsel_n degree_n and_o testimony_n of_o father_n object_v to_o the_o contrary_a prove_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o act_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n partly_o by_o custom_n and_o partly_o by_o humane_a decree_n be_v give_v to_o the_o chief_a presbyter_n or_o bishop_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n not_o belong_v to_o they_o by_o any_o divine_a right_n eight_o that_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o pastor_n no_o more_o than_o a_o coronation_n to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o king_n or_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o marriage_n to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o marriage_n nine_o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n according_a to_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o of_o simple_a office_n which_o presbyter_n may_v perform_v without_o any_o command_n or_o jurisdiction_n ten_o that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o teach_v that_o baptism_n confer_v by_o any_o christian_a though_o a_o lay_v man_n or_o woman_n be_v good_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o that_o a_o simple_a presbyter_n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o popish_a doctor_n may_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n or_o confer_v any_o of_o the_o great_a order_n and_o that_o all_o the_o pontifician_n teach_v with_o unanimous_a consent_n that_o a_o bishop_n once_o consecrate_v although_o he_o be_v a_o simoniack_a heretic_n excommunicate_a person_n or_o the_o like_a may_v yet_o firm_o ordain_v other_o therefore_o a_o fortiori_fw-la godly_a presbyter_n or_o the_o people_n and_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v lawful_o confer_v order_n without_o the_o help_n or_o concurrence_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o authority_n of_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v slight_v as_o schismatical_a or_o erroneous_a it_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o our_o own_o and_o other_o protestant_a writer_n church_n and_o this_o book_n of_o his_o print_a by_o authority_n in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n no_o long_o since_o then_o anno_fw-la 1629._o it_o be_v evident_a then_o by_o this_o whole_a cloud_n of_o witness_n to_o omit_v other_o that_o the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o say_v 4._o gratian_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o prayer_n over_o a_o man_n and_o as_o 337._o aquinas_n write_v signify_v only_o the_o confer_v of_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n and_o not_o that_o minister_n not_o bishop_n who_o be_v here_o but_o minister_n give_v this_o grace_n and_o so_o as_o proper_a for_o minister_n as_o bishop_n both_o by_o divine_a and_o humane_a right_n and_o practice_v belong_v to_o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n therefore_o bishop_n can_v be_v paramount_n presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n in_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o this_o regard_n neither_o will_v this_o power_n of_o ordination_n prove_v timothy_n or_o titus_n bishop_n as_o they_o now_o vain_o surmise_v hence_o therefore_o i_o retort_v the_o objection_n in_o this_o manner_n against_o the_o opposite_n that_o power_n or_o authority_n which_o be_v common_a by_o divine_a right_n and_o institution_n to_o minister_n and_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n can_v neither_o prove_v timothy_n or_o titus_n to_o be_v bishop_n or_o bishop_n to_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n in_o jurisdiction_n order_n dignity_n or_o degree_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la but_o the_o power_n of_o authority_n of_o ordain_v presbyter_n minister_n and_o deacon_n be_v such_o as_o the_o premise_n undeniable_o evidence_n therefore_o it_o can_v neither_o prove_v timothy_n or_o titus_n to_o be_v bishop_n nor_o bishop_n to_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n or_o minister_n in_o jurisdiction_n order_n dignity_n or_o degree_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la six_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o 1._o tim._n 3._o and_o titus_n 1._o 6._o etc._n etc._n make_v a_o particular_a enumeration_n and_o recital_n both_o of_o the_o qualification_n and_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o among_o all_o these_o he_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n concern_v the_o power_n of_o act_n of_o ordination_n neither_o do_v he_o make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o a_o bishop_n qualification_n or_o duty_n to_o be_v apt_a and_o able_a discreet_o to_o confer_v order_n as_o he_o do_v particular_o require_v he_o 2._o shall_v be_v apt_a to_o teach_v how_o therefore_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o chief_a property_n or_o principal_a quality_n of_o a_o bishop_n i_o can_v yet_o conjecture_v since_o the_o scripture_n make_v it_o none_o but_o rather_o a_o property_n a_o act_n of_o the_o presbytery_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o acts._n 13._o 3._o 4._o i_o shall_v desire_v bishop_n therefore_o to_o produce_v some_o divine_a charter_n or_o other_o for_o this_o pretend_a monopoliâe_n of_o ordination_n which_o they_o will_v engross_v unto_o themselves_o alone_o perchance_o to_o make_v the_o more_o advantage_n by_o it_o
without_o due_a examination_n or_o make_v minister_n without_o a_o title_n as_o many_o now_o do_v for_o which_o the_o 1603._o canon_n prescribe_v they_o shall_v be_v suspend_v from_o give_v order_n for_o two_o year_n space_n be_v inferior_a in_o order_n and_o degree_n to_o bishop_n who_o may_v execute_v this_o power_n and_o ordain_v and_o so_o one_o bishop_n shall_v be_v superior_a in_o order_n and_o degree_n to_o another_o bishop_n which_o none_o ever_o yet_o affirm_v yea_o all_o our_o bishop_n be_v prohibit_v and_o disable_v by_o their_o own_o 31._o canon_n to_o ordain_v minister_n or_o deacon_n at_o any_o time_n but_o only_o at_o the_o 4._o solemn_a time_n appoint_v and_o that_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o dean_n archdeaâon_n or_o two_o prebend_n at_o the_o least_o or_o of_o 4._o other_o grave_a person_n be_v master_n of_o art_n at_o least_o and_o allow_v for_o public_a preacher_n it_o will_v hereupon_o follow_v that_o bishop_n only_o at_o these_o 4._o time_n of_o the_o year_n be_v great_a in_o dignity_n and_o degree_n than_o minister_n because_o they_o may_v then_o ordain_v but_o not_o at_o other_o season_n when_o they_o have_v no_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o confer_v order_n upon_o any_o be_v restrain_v by_o the_o canon_n all_o which_o be_v lay_v together_o discover_v the_o weakennes_n the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o our_o prelate_n theory_n on_o which_o they_o build_v both_o their_o own_o &_o titus_n his_o hierarchy_n which_o now_o fall_v quite_o to_o ruin_v with_o this_o their_o sandy_a foundation_n which_o i_o have_v here_o ãâã_d ever_o dissipate_v &_o subvert_v if_o i_o mistake_v not_o obj._n 5._o if_o any_o final_o object_n that_o the_o father_n stile_n titus_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o crete_n and_o timothy_n of_o ephesus_n therefore_o they_o be_v diocaesan_n bishop_n and_o superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n and_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n be_v other_o diocaesan_n bishop_n as_o well_o as_o they_o answ_n 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o neither_o s._n paul_n nor_o s._n luke_n who_o live_v in_o their_o time_n and_o know_v they_o far_o better_a than_o any_o father_n or_o writer_n since_o ever_o so_o much_o as_o once_o term_v or_o style_v they_o bishop_n much_o less_o the_o first_o or_o sole_a diocaesan_n bishop_n of_o crete_n or_o ephesus_n which_o no_o doubt_v they_o will_v have_v do_v have_v they_o be_v in_o truth_n diocaesan_n bishop_n there_o and_o the_o name_n the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n so_o honourable_a and_o sublime_a above_o that_o of_o minister_n even_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o our_o prelate_n and_o their_o flatterer_n now_o pretend_v their_o testimony_n therefore_o who_o style_v they_o only_a 2._o minister_n or_o evangelist_n never_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o father_n and_o writer_n who_o style_v they_o bishop_n be_v neither_o acquaint_v with_o their_o person_n or_o function_n nor_o live_v in_o their_o age_n second_o no_o father_n ever_o style_v they_o or_o either_o of_o they_o a_o diocaesan_n or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o crete_n or_o ephesus_n the_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v prove_v but_o bishop_n only_o as_o they_o style_v other_o minister_n the_o name_n the_o office_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o promiscuous_o use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n all_o presbyter_n be_v then_o call_v bishop_n and_o all_o bishop_n presbyter_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o acts._n 14._o 23._o c._n 20._o 17._o 28._o phil._n 1._o 1._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 1._o 2._o 3._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 2._o john_n 1._o 3._o john_n 1._o philemon_n 9_o with_o all_o ancient_a all_o modern_a commentator_n on_o these_o text_n whence_o the_o translator_n of_o our_o last_o authorize_v english_a bible_n affix_v these_o content_n to_o titus_n 1._o 6._o to_o 10._o which_o treat_v of_o the_o quality_n of_o bishop_n how_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v choose_v minister_n ought_v to_o be_v qualify_v and_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n of_o minister_n confirm_v by_o two_o 1._o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n prescribe_v the_o 1._o tim._n c._n 3._o act_n 20._o and_o titus_n ãâã_d to_o be_v read_v both_o at_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n and_o so_o intimate_v yea_o interpretes_n that_o bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o the_o scripture_n language_n be_v both_o one_o in_o name_n and_o office_n and_o be_v so_o repute_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n three_o the_o father_n use_n the_o word_n elder_n and_o bishop_n promiscuous_o call_v elder_n bishop_n and_o bishop_n elder_n hence_o papias_n the_o auditor_n of_o s._n john_n and_o companion_n of_o polycarpus_n write_v thus_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n 55._o it_o shall_v not_o seem_v grievous_a untome_n if_o that_o i_o compile_v in_o writing_n and_o commit_v to_o memory_n the_o thing_n which_o i_o learn_v of_o the_o elder_n if_o any_o come_v in_o place_n which_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n forthwith_o demand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o elder_n what_o andrew_n what_o peter_n what_o philip_n what_o thomas_n or_o james_n or_o john_n or_o matthew_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n disciple_n what_o ariston_n and_o the_o elder_a john_n disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v here_o he_o style_v not_o only_o bishop_n but_o even_o apostle_n elder_n polycarpus_n his_o companion_n and_o coaetanian_a write_v thus_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n 96._o be_v you_o subject_a to_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o to_o god_n let_v the_o presbyter_n be_v simple_a and_o merciful_a in_o all_o thing_n now_o those_o who_o he_o here_o style_v presbyter_n s._n paul_n express_o term_n bishop_n philip._n 1._o 1._o justine_n martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n use_v neither_o the_o name_n bishop_n nor_o elder_a but_o term_n the_o minister_n only_o he_o who_o be_v set_v over_o the_o brithren_n he_o who_o hold_v the_o first_o place_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o deacon_n who_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n not_o to_o any_o elder_n of_o a_o inferior_a order_n to_o he_o and_o lest_o any_o one_o shall_v dream_v that_o justine_n martyr_n here_o speak_v of_o a_o bishop_n tertullian_n who_o live_v near_o about_o that_o time_n or_o within_o few_o year_n in_o his_o 694._o apology_n write_v thus_o president_n nobis_fw-la probati_fw-la quique_fw-la seniores_fw-la etc._n etc._n approve_a elder_n not_o bishop_n be_v set_v over_o we_o have_v obtain_v this_o honour_n not_o with_o any_o price_n but_o by_o a_o good_a testimony_n whence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o his_o age_n every_o christian_a congregation_n have_v divers_a elder_n not_o one_o diocaesan_n bishop_n over_o it_o to_o feed_v and_o rule_v it_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n time_n acts._n 14._o 23._o c._n 20._o 17._o 28_o c._n 21._o 18._o philip._n 1._o 1._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o tit._n 1._o 5._o james_n 5._o 14._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 1._o 2._o hence_o learned_a 16._o apollinarius_n call_v the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n presbyter_n and_o 23._o clemens_n alexandrinus_n relate_v the_o story_n of_o the_o young_a man_n deliver_v by_o s._n john_n to_o a_o bishop_n to_o train_v up_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n twice_o together_o call_v he_o interchaingable_o both_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o elder_a as_o meridith_n hamner_n a_o bishop_n english_v it_o so_o 20._o ireneus_fw-la one_o of_o the_o ancient_a of_o all_o the_o father_n style_v polycarpus_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n that_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a elder_a yea_o he_o term_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o elder_n 26._o they_o say_v he_o that_o be_v elder_n before_o soter_n of_o the_o church_n which_o now_o thou_o govern_v i_o mean_v anacletus_fw-la pius_fw-la hyginus_n thelesphorus_n and_o xystus_n neither_o do_v so_o observe_v it_o themselves_o neither_o leave_v they_o any_o such_o commandment_n unto_o posterity_n and_o the_o same_o father_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 2._o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 43._o 44._o oftentimes_o 8._o style_v bishop_n elder_n and_o elder_n bishop_n make_v presbyter_n equal_a to_o bishop_n in_o all_o respect_n and_o successor_n to_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o much_o as_o they_o so_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o xystus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 240._o write_v thus_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a brother_n repute_v to_o be_v of_o our_o church_n and_o faith_n very_a age_a &_o priusquam_fw-la ego_fw-la etiam_fw-la creatus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la and_o create_v a_o bishop_n before_o i_o be_v and_o as_o i_o think_v before_o bless_a heraclas_n be_v make_v a_o bishop_n where_o he_o express_o term_v this_o party_n who_o be_v but_o a_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n only_o in_o that_o church_n a_o bishop_n and_o say_v he_o be_v create_v a_o
as_o well_o temporal_a and_o civil_a as_o ecclesiastical_a and_o all_o these_o their_o office_n style_v in_o greek_a a_o bishopric_n since_o every_o pastor_n watchman_n presbyter_n minister_n rector_n and_o curate_n who_o take_v care_n of_o watch_v feed_v overlook_v instruct_v or_o keep_v the_o flock_n and_o people_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n be_v even_o in_o the_o scripture_n language_n call_v a_o bishop_n and_o say_v to_o act_v to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n since_o those_o who_o out_o of_o charity_n love_n or_o friendship_n go_v to_o visit_v other_o who_o be_v either_o sick_a poor_a fatherless_a or_o otherwise_o distress_v and_o god_n himself_o when_o he_o come_v to_o punish_v or_o show_v mercy_n unto_o other_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a and_o scripture_n phrase_n say_v to_o visit_v and_o play_v the_o bishop_n as_o appear_z by_o the_o forecited_a scripture_n and_o by_o acts._n 15._o 36._o where_o paul_n say_v to_o barnabas_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o we_o translate_v let_v we_o go_v again_o and_o visit_v our_o brethren_n in_o every_o city_n where_o we_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v from_o which_o text_n the_o m._n rhemist_n will_v make_v bishop_n ordinary_a visitation_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la but_o this_o be_v no_o lordly_a episcopal_a visitation_n such_o as_o our_o bishop_n now_o keep_v for_o we_o read_v of_o no_o visitation_n article_n oath_n fee_n or_o presentmens_n in_o it_o neither_o be_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n bishop_n but_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a visitation_n of_o love_n as_o one_o friend_n visit_v another_o not_o of_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o last_o word_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v together_o with_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n can._n 57_o expound_v it_o and_o verse_n 14._o simon_n have_v declare_v how_o god_n ãâã_d at_o the_o first_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v visit_v the_o gentile_n to_o take_v out_o of_o they_o a_o people_n for_o his_o name_n and_o acts._n 7._o 23._o when_o moses_n be_v full_a 40._o year_n old_a it_o come_v into_o his_o heart_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o visit_v his_o brethren_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o since_o these_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v to_o visit_v oversee_v or_o play_v the_o bishop_n 107._o imply_v no_o lordship_n soveraingty_n dominion_n jurisdiction_n or_o lordly_a episcopal_a authority_n in_o they_o at_o least_o no_o such_o as_o our_o bishop_n now_o claim_v and_o exercise_v but_o rather_o a_o act_n of_o humility_n charity_n service_n and_o inferiority_n to_o the_o person_n visit_v as_o be_v evident_a by_o matthew_n 25._o 3._o 6._o 43._o acts._n 7._o 23._o c._n 15._o 36._o jam._n 1._o 27._o heb._n 2._o 6._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 2._o 3._o 5._o it_o hence_o unanswerable_o follow_v that_o bishop_n episcopal_a lordly_a visitation_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o that_o other_o minister_n be_v as_o much_o visitor_n and_o may_v visit_v as_o well_o as_o they_o that_o every_o presbyter_n minister_n curate_n who_o do_v faithful_o discharge_v his_o duty_n 1465._o be_v as_o much_o as_o true_o as_o proper_o a_o bishop_n both_o in_o the_o scripture_n language_n and_o in_o god_n account_n as_o any_o diocaesan_n bishop_n or_o prelate_n whatsoever_o that_o those_o bishop_n who_o merge_n themselves_o in_o pleasure_n idleness_n or_o secular_a affair_n and_o do_v not_o diligent_o faithful_o entire_o give_v themselves_o to_o preach_v god_n word_n instruct_v and_o teach_v the_o people_n visit_v the_o fatherless_a imprison_v sick_a poor_a widow_n and_o flock_n commit_v to_o they_o which_o few_o of_o our_o prelate_n now_o deign_v to_o do_v be_v 4._o in_o truth_n in_o god_n in_o christ_n account_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n language_n no_o bishop_n at_o all_o what_o ever_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o word_n bishop_n be_v 3_o not_o a_o title_n of_o dominion_n soveraingty_n jurisdiction_n glory_n power_n preeminency_n pomp_n state_n authority_n and_o command_v as_o our_o bishop_n who_o now_o presume_v to_o monopolise_v it_o to_o themselves_o alone_o though_o common_a ãâ¦ã_z god_n be_v word_n and_o ancient_a writer_n to_o every_o minister_n pretend_v but_o of_o humility_n office_n service_n labour_n care_n circumspection_n watchfulness_n meekness_n tenderheartedness_n charity_n familiarity_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n which_o most_o prelate_n have_v now_o quite_o shake_v off_o the_o father_n still_v therefore_o of_o timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n or_o titus_n bishop_n of_o crete_n or_o bishop_n will_v neither_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v diocaesan_n or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o those_o church_n or_o that_o they_o have_v a_o superiority_n or_o jurisdiction_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n over_o all_o other_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n in_o those_o church_n or_o that_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la superior_a to_o or_o different_a in_o order_n or_o degree_n from_o presbyter_n who_o have_v the_o selfsame_o commission_n or_o authority_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n as_o they_o and_o so_o have_v equal_a authority_n with_o they_o and_o be_v as_o much_o bishop_n every_o way_n by_o god_n law_n as_o they_o even_o as_o every_o high_a commissioner_n of_o the_o quorum_fw-la be_v as_o much_o a_o high_a commissioner_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n or_o york_n and_o have_v as_o much_o authority_n as_o a_o high_a commissioner_n as_o they_o since_o they_o have_v all_o the_o selfsame_o commission_n which_o give_v no_o great_a power_n to_o one_o of_o they_o then_o the_o other_o but_o the_o same_o to_o both_o indeed_o have_v christ_n give_v a_o different_a commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o seaventy_n disciple_n or_o to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n then_o to_o other_o elder_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n or_o to_o bishop_n than_o he_o have_v give_v to_o presbyter_n and_o minister_n there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o ground_n to_o have_v prove_v the_o 12._o apostle_n timothy_n tytus_fw-la and_o bishop_n great_a in_o jurisdiction_n power_n authority_n and_o degree_n than_o the_o 70._o disciple_n presbyter_n and_o other_o minister_n by_o divine_a institution_n but_o since_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o 21._o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o 12._o apostle_n and_o 70._o disciple_n what_o ever_o he_o some_o man_n have_v rash_o determine_v to_o the_o contrary_a have_v but_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o commission_n give_v unto_o they_o by_o christ_n that_o timothy_n titus_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n have_v no_o other_o no_o large_a patent_n commission_n or_o authority_n grant_v unto_o they_o by_o christ_n than_o presbyter_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n as_o the_o book_n of_o ordination_n manifest_v where_o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v the_o same_o commission_n give_v from_o god_n to_o minister_n at_o the_o ordination_n of_o every_o minister_n as_o there_o be_v to_o bishop_n at_o the_o consecration_n of_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n since_o they_o be_v all_o join_v together_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o divine_a charter_n and_o all_o claim_n by_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o grant_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o math._n 28._o 19_o 20._o mark_n 6._o 15_o 16._o john_n 20._o 22._o 23._o acts._n 1._o 8._o c._n 10._o 47._o c._n 20._o 17._o 28._o col._n 4._o 17._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o to_o 7._o c._n 4._o 12._o 13._o c._n 5._o 17._o 18._o 20._o 21._o 22._o c._n 6._o 11._o 12._o 17._o 18._o 19_o 20._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 14._o 15._o 16._o c._n 4._o 1._o to_o 16._o tit._n 1._o 5._o to_o 14._o c._n 2._o 1._o to_o 15._o c._n 3._o 1._o 2._o 8._o 9_o 10._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o 5._o 2._o pet._n 1._o 12._o 13._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 12._o 13._o 17._o c._n 3._o 4._o 5._o to_o 11._o 21._o 22._o c._n 4._o 1._o 6._o 7._o 17._o c._n 9_o 16._o 17._o c._n 13._o 29._o 30._o 31._o 32._o ephes_n 4._o 11._o 12._o with_o other_o scripture_n it_o be_v most_o apparent_a and_o undeniable_a that_o by_o god_n word_n and_o institution_n they_o be_v all_o equal_a both_o in_o point_n of_o office_n power_n jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n not_o one_o of_o they_o great_a high_a or_o superior_a than_o the_o other_o have_v the_o selfsame_o divine_a ordination_n commission_n office_n and_o charge_n final_o hist._n eusebius_n record_v only_o that_o timothy_n be_v report_a to_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n of_o the_o church_n in_o crete_n so_o that_o all_o the_o father_n authority_n who_o follow_v eusebius_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o this_o bare_a report_n not_o upon_o any_o certainty_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v grant_v or_o rely_v on_o the_o rather_o 812._o because_o there_o have_v be_v ancient_o in_o crete_n no_o less_o than_o 4._o archbishop_n and_o 21._o bishop_n suffââaganes_n now_o it_o be_v very_o improbable_a that_o paul_n will_v
institute_v titus_n archbishop_n or_o superintendent_n general_a of_o all_o crete_n it_o be_v so_o large_a a_o circuit_n have_v so_o many_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n see_v within_o it_o and_o he_o so_o little_o resident_a in_o so_o often_o absent_a from_o it_o as_o i_o have_v manifest_v in_o the_o premise_n from_o all_o which_o i_o presume_v i_o may_v safe_o conclude_v this_o second_o question_n against_o the_o common_a receive_v error_n that_o titus_n be_v never_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n what_o ever_o our_o prelate_n and_o their_o favourite_n have_v write_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o so_o timothy_n be_v neither_o a_o diocaesan_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n nor_o titus_n of_o crect_n the_o pretend_a hierarchy_n of_o our_o prelate_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la build_v only_o upon_o the_o 27._o sandy_a foundation_n of_o these_o two_o suppose_a bishop_n bishopricke_n must_v needs_o now_o fall_v to_o ruin_v and_o they_o be_v now_o lift_v up_o so_o high_a above_o their_o fellow_n brethren_n their_o fall_n must_v certain_o prove_v very_o great_a they_o have_v long_o since_o many_o of_o they_o forsake_a god_n the_o teach_n of_o his_o word_n the_o chief_a part_n 500_o of_o their_o spiritual_a function_n band_v themselves_o against_o his_o truth_n minister_n people_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n which_o they_o suppress_v and_o put_v down_o in_o all_o place_n yea_o such_o be_v their_o desperate_a impiety_n that_o whereas_o in_o all_o former_a time_n of_o plague_n and_o pestilence_n yea_o in_o print_v 1._o jacobi_fw-la and_o caroli_n there_o have_v be_v by_o public_a authority_n a_o special_a day_n of_o fast_v prayer_n preach_v and_o humiliation_n appoint_v every_o week_n especial_o in_o infect_a place_n to_o divert_v god_n heavy_a judgement_n as_o the_o chief_a antidote_n against_o all_o plague_n and_o judgement_n prescribe_v by_o god_n himself_o 10._o yet_o now_o they_o be_v grow_v such_o open_a fighter_n against_o god_n religion_n the_o spiritual_a the_o temporal_a good_a and_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n that_o to_o prevent_v the_o plague_n as_o they_o pretend_v but_o in_o truth_n to_o increase_v it_o more_o and_o to_o suppress_v preach_v piety_n and_o religion_n they_o begin_v to_o put_v down_o all_o weekeday_n lecture_n and_o lord_n day_n sermon_n in_o the_o afternoon_n as_o if_o god_n public_a ordinance_n and_o service_n the_o best_a remedy_n against_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o increase_v and_o spread_v not_o stay_v the_o plague_n yea_o they_o debar_v declare_v minister_n from_o use_v any_o prayer_n at_o all_o after_o their_o sermon_n or_o any_o other_o prayer_n before_o they_o than_o what_o the_o 55._o canon_n prescribe_v in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o prayer_n against_o the_o plague_n drought_n famine_n sword_n or_o pestilence_n by_o mean_n whereof_o inhibit_v minister_n thus_o to_o reproove_v the_o people_n for_o their_o sin_n which_o provoke_v god_n wrath_n and_o judgement_n at_o this_o present_a &_o so_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n for_o they_o 17._o by_o their_o preach_n or_o to_o pray_v against_o the_o plague_n and_o other_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o now_o lie_v hard_a upon_o the_o kingdom_n which_o these_o sin_n have_v occasion_v and_o hinder_v that_o public_a weekly_a fast_v preach_v &_o prayer_n which_o god_n by_o his_o judgement_n 13._o now_o call_v for_o at_o our_o hand_n they_o have_v make_v not_o only_o the_o kingdom_n but_o themselves_o especial_o ripe_a for_o ruin_n and_o be_v now_o for_o these_o their_o atheistical_a godless_a practice_n their_o enmity_n to_o god_n his_o truth_n his_o faithful_a minister_n and_o people_n their_o lordlines_n tyranny_n pride_n oppression_n wordlines_n profane_v and_o irreligion_n fall_v under_o the_o very_a 22._o execration_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o 5._o the_o curse_n of_o his_o people_n who_o day_n and_o night_n cry_v for_o vengeance_n against_o they_o as_o god_n swear_v and_o most_o profess_a open_a enemy_n and_o have_v no_o divine_a foundation_n prop_n or_o pillar_n now_o leave_v where_o with_o to_o support_v their_o totter_a throne_n and_o mitre_n needs_o muââ_n they_o short_o like_o that_o 18._o high_a priest_n ely_n fall_v from_o their_o high-towring_a seat_n backward_o and_o so_o break_v their_o neck_n to_o the_o joy_n of_o all_o god_n people_n who_o they_o now_o by_o their_o persecution_n and_o innovation_n so_o much_o oppress_v even_o so_o let_v all_o thy_o enemy_n perish_v o_o lord_n but_o let_v they_o that_o love_v thou_o be_v as_o the_o sun_n when_o it_o go_v forth_o in_o his_o might_n a_o postscript_n our_o famous_a 502._o martyr_n john_n purvey_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o four_o his_o reign_n deliver_v this_o position_n touch_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o whosoever_o receive_v or_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o of_o a_o bishop_n and_o discharge_v not_o the_o same_o by_o the_o example_n of_o his_o godly_a conversation_n and_o faithful_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o thief_n excommunicate_v of_o god_n and_o of_o holy_a church_n and_o further_o that_o if_o the_o curate_n preach_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o if_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o preach_v they_o ought_v to_o resign_v their_o live_n as_o 8._o pope_n celestine_n the_o five_o 14._o adelbartus_fw-la the_o second_o bishop_n of_o prague_n daniel_n the_o 6._o and_o firthstane_n the_o 23._o bishop_n of_o winchester_n john_n the_o 5._o and_o thurstan_n the_o 28._o archbishop_n of_o york_n thomas_n spofford_n the_o 56._o bishop_n of_o hareford_n beside_o sundry_a other_o before-cited_n resign_v their_o bishopricke_n so_o that_o those_o prelate_n which_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n although_o they_o can_v excuse_v themselves_o from_o the_o do_n of_o any_o other_o evil_n be_v dead_a in_o themselves_o be_v antichrist_n and_o satan_n transfigure_v into_o angel_n of_o light_n night_n theive_v manqueller_n by_o daylight_n and_o betrayer_n of_o christ_n his_o people_n what_o then_o shall_v we_o think_v or_o judge_v of_o many_o of_o our_o present_a lordly_a sway_a english_a prelate_n some_o of_o which_o never_o preach_v since_o they_o be_v make_v bishop_n other_o not_o once_o in_o a_o dozen_o year_n other_o but_o once_o in_o a_o year_n or_o two_o &_o that_o not_o in_o their_o diocese_n to_o their_o people_n where_o many_o of_o they_o never_o yet_o preach_v but_o at_o court_n few_o of_o they_o above_o once_o a_o quarter_n or_o once_o a_o month_n at_o most_o where_o as_o 1._o s._n ambrose_n joan._n s._n augustine_n genes_n s._n chrysostome_n 14._o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o 2._o other_o bishop_n heretofore_o and_o 1366._o bishop_n hooper_n and_o 1696._o bishop_n ridley_n in_o king_n edward_n the_o 6._o day_n preach_v once_o or_o twice_o every_o day_n of_o the_o week_n without_o fail_n or_o intermission_n yea_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o those_o bishop_n who_o now_o everywhere_o put_v down_o lecture_n and_o preach_v both_o on_o weekedaye_n and_o lordsdaye_n to_o suspend_v silence_v excommunicate_v imprison_a deprive_v the_o most_o powerful_a painful_a faithful_a godly_a minister_n in_o all_o their_o diocese_n for_o no_o offence_n either_o in_o life_n or_o doctrine_n for_o no_o violation_n of_o any_o ceremony_n by_o law_n establish_v but_o mere_o for_o not_o subscribe_v to_o their_o late_a popish_a innovation_n illegal_a injunction_n and_o command_n warrant_v by_o no_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n the_o sole_a pretend_a cause_n yet_o in_o truth_n out_o of_o their_o desperate_a hatred_n to_o the_o sincere_a frequent_a powerful_a preach_v and_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n which_o seem_v to_o condemn_v their_o idle_a secular_a lordly_a vicious_a life_n and_o practice_n to_o the_o progress_n power_n and_o growth_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n soul_n nay_o what_o shall_v we_o judge_v of_o that_o proud_a insolent_a regulus_n and_o imperious_a prelate_n matthew_n wren_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n who_o have_v not_o only_o put_v down_o many_o famous_a worthy_a preacher_n and_o all_o lecture_n throughout_o his_o diocese_n both_o on_o the_o weekedaye_n lordsday_n evening_n norwich_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o morning_n too_o in_o many_o place_n and_o silence_v divers_a minister_n of_o chief_a note_n for_o not_o conform_v to_o his_o strangânovell_a magisterial_a innovation_n and_o late_a visitation_n article_n print_v and_o publish_v 43._o like_o a_o absolute_a monarch_n king_n and_o pope_n in_o his_o own_o name_n &_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n alone_o in_o affront_n of_o his_o majesty_n 1._o law_n and_o â¡_o declaration_n for_o which_o he_o have_v incur_v a_o praemunire_n but_o likewise_o very_o fresh_o since_o his_o late_a come_n to_o ipswitch_n where_o he_o have_v silence_v 7_o preacher_n and_o have_v no_o sermon_n at_o all_o oft_o time_n on_o the_o lordsday_n in_o his_o own_o parish_n church_n command_v the_o sexton_n of_o one_o mr._n scot_n church_n in_o
neither_o will_v not_o nor_o can_v preach_v and_o persecute_v none_o but_o the_o most_o painful_a preacher_n a_o thing_n well_o worthy_a note_n discover_v their_o enmity_n to_o be_v direct_o against_o preach_v and_o the_o gospel_n to_o remember_v that_o of_o master_n 2._o tyndall_n our_o godly_a martyr_n that_o bishop_n who_o persecute_v their_o own_o office_n of_o preach_v for_o and_o by_o which_o they_o hold_v their_o ãâã_d bishopricke_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o it_o nor_o sufferable_a in_o it_o and_o that_o bishop_n or_o priest_n that_o preach_v not_o or_o that_o preach_v aught_o save_o god_n word_n be_v none_o of_o christ_n nor_o of_o his_o anoint_v therefore_o not_o jure_v divino_fw-la but_o servant_n of_o the_o beast_n who_o mark_n they_o bear_v who_o word_n they_o preach_v who_o law_n they_o maintain_v clean_o against_o god_n law_n and_o therefore_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n must_v and_o will_v henceforth_o call_v and_o deem_v they_o such_o as_o for_o 134._o those_o minister_n most_o unjust_o silence_v suspend_v and_o excommunicate_v by_o they_o who_o now_o base_o sit_v down_o silent_a under_o their_o suspension_n when_o as_o they_o shall_v go_v ãâã_d courageous_o in_o their_o ministry_n in_o despite_n of_o they_o i_o shall_v desire_v they_o only_o to_o consider_v first_o the_o throughout_o example_n and_o answer_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o who_o when_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o high_a priest_n elder_n and_o whole_a council_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o have_v as_o much_o or_o more_o power_n over_o they_o then_o any_o bishop_n have_v over_o minister_n at_o this_o day_n not_o to_o speak_v at_o all_o or_o teach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n give_v this_o answer_n we_o ought_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n whether_o it_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o hearken_v unto_o god_n more_o than_o unto_o you_o judge_v you_o for_o we_o can_v but_o speak_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v and_o though_o they_o be_v thrice_o express_o inhibit_v from_o preach_v yea_o imprison_a and_o beat_v for_o violate_v these_o prohibition_n yet_o they_o daily_o in_o the_o temple_n in_o everi_n house_n which_o now_o forsooth_o must_v be_v a_o conventicle_n i_o be_o sure_a a_o apostolical_a one_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o preach_v and_o teach_v jesus_n christ_n fill_v jerusalem_n and_o every_o place_n with_o their_o doctrine_n the_o very_a angel_n of_o god_n himself_o command_v they_o to_o do_v it_o if_o then_o the_o whole_a senate_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o elder_n their_o terrible_a prohibition_n and_o suspension_n yea_o their_o imprisonment_n and_o stripe_n can_v neither_o keep_v nor_o deâerre_v the_o apostle_n from_o preach_v why_o shall_v our_o bishop_n threat_n suspention_n ãâã_d most_o unjust_a illegal_a censure_n warrant_v by_o no_o statute_n law_n ot_fw-mi commission_n from_o his_o majesty_n hinder_v our_o minister_n from_o their_o duty_n second_o the_o example_n of_o our_o own_o godly_a 1690._o martyr_n who_o both_o their_o doctrine_n and_o example_n teach_v and_o profess_v that_o minister_n ought_v not_o to_o give_v over_o preach_v for_o any_o unjust_a suspension_n excommunication_n inhibition_n censure_n or_o persecution_n whatsoever_o either_o of_o the_o pope_n himself_o or_o of_o any_o other_o prelate_n go_v on_o bold_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n maugre_o all_o inhibition_n menace_n imprisonment_n and_o penalty_n to_o the_o contrary_a though_o fire_n and_o death_n itself_o whereupon_o they_o never_o will_v give_v over_o their_o preach_n upon_o any_o prelate_n inhibition_n no_o not_o in_o their_o prison_n where_o master_n bradford_n and_o other_o preach_v twice_o every_o day_n and_o shall_v our_o eminent_a minister_n now_o in_o the_o sun_n shine_v of_o the_o gospel_n under_o a_o most_o gracious_a prince_n be_v more_o pusillanimous_a base_a and_o cowardly_a than_o these_o godly_a martyr_n be_v even_o in_o time_n of_o darkness_n under_o popish_a prince_n prelate_n and_o tyrant_n when_o it_o be_v death_n to_o profess_v and_o preach_v the_o truth_n which_o now_o god_n be_v thank_v it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v god_n forbid_v three_o that_o position_n of_o our_o godly_a martyr_n master_n john_n wicklife_o excellent_o defend_v and_o notable_o prove_v by_o john_n hus_n at_o large_a in_o the_o school_n of_o prague_n as_o all_o may_v read_v at_o leisure_n in_o 418._o master_n fox_n that_o they_o which_o lea_n ãâ¦ã_z off_o preach_v and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o fear_n of_o any_o excommunication_n threaten_v persecution_n or_o imprisonment_n threaten_v or_o inflict_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o be_v already_o excommunicate_a by_o god_n himself_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v be_v account_v the_o betrayer_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v so_o well_o prove_v and_o defend_v by_o hus_n that_o all_o godly_a minister_n and_o people_n must_v subscribe_v thereto_o and_o who_o of_o all_o our_o late_o suspend_v minister_n will_v be_v either_o account_v here_o or_o adjudge_v hereafter_o a_o man_n excommunicate_v of_o god_n and_o a_o betrayer_n of_o christ_n yea_o of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n of_o religion_n itself_o and_o of_o the_o soul_n commit_v to_o his_o cure_n who_o be_v slay_v for_o lack_n of_o spiritual_a food_n while_o they_o out_o of_o a_o slavish_a fear_n of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o or_o who_o sit_v mute_a and_o silent_a and_o become_v so_o many_o laugh_a stock_n to_o our_o prelate_n who_o will_v be_v terrify_v daunt_a and_o repulse_v by_o their_o godly_a courage_n 6._o four_o that_o popish_a priest_n and_o jesuit_n dare_v say_v mass_n and_o preach_v in_o a_o manner_n public_o though_o a_o thing_n unlawful_a and_o express_o prohibit_v both_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o realm_n and_o no_o less_o than_o priest_n high_a treason_n for_o which_o capital_a punishment_n be_v prescribe_v if_o these_o miscreant_n and_o generation_n of_o viper_n than_o have_v so_o much_o courage_n for_o their_o false_a and_o trayter_o religion_n that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v silence_v nor_o scare_v from_o preach_v neither_o by_o law_n nor_o capital_a punishment_n how_o much_o less_o than_o shall_v zealous_a faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n contrary_a to_o god_n law_n and_o the_o realm_n give_v over_o their_o ministry_n and_o preach_v upon_o the_o bare_a illegal_a suspension_n or_o excommunication_n of_o a_o lordly_a bishop_n warrant_v by_o no_o law_n nor_o statute_n of_o the_o realm_n nor_o any_o patent_n or_o commission_n from_o the_o king_n and_o so_o no_o colour_n for_o any_o to_o obey_v or_o submit_v thereto_o five_o what_o a_o great_a blow_n and_o wound_n they_o have_v give_v to_o religion_n what_o great_a discouragement_n and_o ill_a example_n to_o their_o people_n and_o fellow_n minister_n what_o loss_n and_o prejudice_n to_o their_o flock_n what_o encouragement_n to_o jesuit_n seminary_n papist_n and_o domineer_a prelate_n who_o get_v heart_n &_o head_n by_o their_o faintheartednes_n yield_v silence_n and_o submission_n encroach_a every_o day_n further_o on_o their_o liberty_n conscience_n and_o religion_n so_o that_o they_o have_v bring_v themselves_o and_o other_o into_o a_o mere_a vassalage_n to_o the_o bishop_n unruly_a lust_n and_o pleasure_n all_o which_o their_o opposition_n and_o contemn_v of_o these_o their_o suspension_n and_o excommunication_n be_v 13._o mere_a nullity_n in_o law_n for_o want_n of_o a_o commission_n from_o his_o majesty_n a_o lawful_a ground_n a_o due_a manner_n of_o proceed_v and_o his_o majesty_n stile_n and_o seal_v have_v prevent_v and_o may_v yet_o chance_v to_o remedy_n six_o that_o a_o 4._o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o they_o even_o by_o god_n and_o christ_n himself_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n and_o a_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a woe_n denounce_v against_o they_o if_o they_o forbear_v or_o give_v over_o to_o do_v it_o upon_o any_o unjust_a inhibition_n whatsoever_o which_o can_v neither_o nullify_v control_v nor_o dispense_v with_o the_o command_v of_o god_n how_o then_o can_v they_o avoid_v or_o shun_v this_o woe_n if_o the_o frown_n or_o unjust_a suspension_n of_o a_o profane_a unpreach_v domineer_a prelate_n may_v restrain_v they_o from_o this_o duty_n or_o dispense_v with_o this_o most_o serious_a task_n impose_v on_o they_o 4._o from_o heaven_n itself_o seaventh_o that_o solemn_a charge_n that_o be_v give_v they_o in_o the_o name_n and_o behalf_n of_o christ_n himself_o yea_o of_o the_o whole_a realm_n and_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o solemn_a promise_n they_o make_v before_o god_n and_o the_o congregation_n when_o they_o be_v first_o make_v minister_n to_o wit_n minister_n that_o as_o they_o will_v answer_v it_o before_o christ_n tribunal_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n they_o shall_v and_o will_v teach_v premonish_v feed_v and_o provide_v for_o the_o
pestilence_n as_o much_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v even_o upon_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o you_o endeavour_v to_o do_v upon_o these_o 7._o poor_a prisoner_n thus_o detain_v by_o you_o which_o these_o time_n of_o plague_n and_o fast_a call_n upon_o you_o to_o set_v free_a but_o take_v heed_n lest_o while_o you_o seâke_v to_o put_v down_o preach_v and_o fast_v by_o such_o ungodly_a mean_n and_o pretence_n to_o keep_v off_o the_o plague_n from_o we_o and_o other_o you_o draw_v it_o not_o down_o both_o on_o we_o and_o yourselves_o i_o have_v already_o inform_v you_o of_o many_o bishop_n who_o have_v perish_v of_o this_o disease_n i_o can_v acquaint_v you_o yet_o with_o more_o as_o 153._o the_o bishop_n of_o colen_n spire_n ratisbon_n prague_n verden_n and_o leodium_n all_o sweep_v away_o in_o an._n 1169_o ãâã_d hildewardus_n bishop_n of_o hildesheim_n an._n 996._o with_o many_o other_o let_v their_o example_n be_v your_o warning_n and_o if_o you_o will_v prove_v your_o calling_n to_o be_v of_o god_n then_o henceforth_o learn_v to_o preach_v not_o to_o suppress_v his_o word_n to_o be_v 36._o merciful_a as_o he_o be_v merciful_a else_o all_o will_v henceforth_o conclude_v that_o you_o be_v of_o your_o 44._o father_n the_o devil_n for_o his_o work_n you_o do_v he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o body_n and_o so_o be_v you_o now_o if_o your_o holiness_n or_o any_o other_o deem_v this_o censure_n of_o my_o over-harsh_a one_o that_o be_v once_o of_o your_o own_o rochet_n and_o after_o that_o a_o martyr_n edward_n bishop_n latimer_n will_v assure_v you_o that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a devil_n himself_o not_o god_n that_o set_v up_o the_o state_n of_o unpreach_v prelacy_n and_o that_o it_o be_v he_o alone_o who_o stir_v these_o prelate_n up_o to_o persecute_v and_o suppress_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n under_o the_o title_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o ill_a magistrate_n to_o do_v the_o like_a under_o the_o title_n of_o sedition_n and_o our_o learned_a 500_o thomas_n becon_n as_o he_o affirm_v and_o prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o first_o and_o principal_a point_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o spiritual_a minister_n office_n be_v to_o teach_v and_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o he_o resolve_v that_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o either_o do_v not_o or_o can_v preach_v be_v a_o nicholas_n bishop_n and_o a_o idol_n and_o indeed_o no_o better_o than_o a_o paint_a bishop_n on_o a_o wall_n yea_o he_o be_v as_o the_o 10._o prophet_n say_v a_o dumb_a dog_n and_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v 13._o unsavourie_a salt_n aworth_n nothing_o but_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o to_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n of_o man_n woe_n be_v to_o those_o ruler_n that_o set_v such_o idol_n and_o white-daubed_n wall_n over_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n who_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o precious_a blood_n horrible_a and_o great_a be_v their_o damnation_n our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n 21_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o now_o who_o know_v not_o that_o christ_n be_v send_v of_o his_o father_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o 44._o divers_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o such_o as_o be_v send_v of_o christ_n be_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n if_o they_o preach_v not_o the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o our_o lord_n prelate_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a token_n that_o christ_n send_v they_o not_o but_o antichi_v and_o the_o devil_n thus_o and_o much_o more_o becon_n who_o tell_v these_o unpreach_a prelate_n in_o plain_a term_n that_o nothing_o abide_v they_o but_o everlasting_a damnation_n what_o then_o will_v become_v of_o our_o great_a lord_n prelate_n who_o will_v neither_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n themselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v it_o stop_v up_o our_o preacher_n mouth_n with_o their_o illegal_a unchristian_a anti-christian_n suspenions_a and_o excommunication_n yea_o express_o prohibit_v all_o preach_n in_o these_o doleful_a mortiferous_a time_n of_o plague_n and_o pestilence_n and_o that_o on_o the_o very_a fasting-day_n for_o fear_v it_o shall_v infect_v man_n soul_n and_o body_n when_o as_o the_o whole_a 464._o council_n of_o paris_n under_o lewes_n and_o lotharius_n anno_fw-la 829._o l._n 1_o 2_o 5._o decree_v the_o quite_o contrary_a in_o these_o very_a remarkable_a term_n statuimus_fw-la pari_fw-la voto_fw-la parique_fw-la consensu_fw-la ut_fw-la unusquisque_fw-la nostrum_fw-la dictis_fw-la &_o exemplis_fw-la plebes_fw-la parochiae_fw-la suae_fw-la attentius_fw-la ad_fw-la meliâra_fw-la incitare_fw-la studeo_fw-la easque_fw-la ut_fw-la se_fw-la a_o malis_fw-la cohibeant_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la dominum_fw-la ex_fw-la totocorde_fw-fr convertant_fw-la solicit_v admoneant_fw-la deumque_fw-la quem_fw-la peccando_fw-la sibi_fw-la iratum_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la digna_fw-la paenitentiae_fw-la satisfactione_n &_o eleemosinarum_fw-la largitione_n sibi_fw-la placabilem_fw-la facere_fw-la satagant_fw-la etc._n etc._n cum_fw-la itaque_fw-la praedicatores_fw-la sine_fw-la cessatione_fw-la populodei_fw-la praedicare_fw-la necesse_fw-la sit_fw-la juxta_fw-la illud_fw-la esaiae_n 58._o clam_n neecsses_n quasi_fw-la tuba_fw-la exalt_v a_o vocem_fw-la tuam_fw-la &_o annuncia_fw-la populââeo_fw-la scelera_fw-la âorum_fw-la &_o domui_fw-la jacob_n peccata_fw-la corum_fw-la tum_fw-la maxim_n id_fw-la facere_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la qvando_fw-la iram_fw-la domini_fw-la contra_fw-la populum_fw-la dei_fw-la meritis_fw-la exigentibus_fw-la grassari_fw-la persepxerint_fw-la juxta_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la dominus_fw-la per_fw-la ezechielem_fw-la prophetamloquitur_fw-la ezech._n 3._o 17._o 18._o 19_o etc._n etc._n 33._o 7_o 8._o 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n at_o which_o our_o silent_a and_o silence_v prelate_n and_o old_a dote_a shelford_n priest_n may_v well_o blush_v for_o shame_n especial_o if_o they_o peruse_v the_o 23_o 24_o 25._o 28_o 29._o and_o 31._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o council_n follow_v and_o good_a reason_n for_o the_o very_a romish_a prelate_n in_o the_o 4._o concell_n of_o trent_n as_o lewd_a as_o they_o be_v have_v so_o much_o ingenuity_n as_o to_o decree_v that_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o a_o bishop_n office_n belong_v especial_o unto_o they_o and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v exercise_v as_o frequent_o as_o may_v be_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n and_o thereupon_o enjoin_v all_o bishop_n in_o proper_a person_n or_o in_o case_n of_o inevitable_a occasion_n by_o their_o sufficient_a substitute_n and_o all_o minister_n in_o every_o parish_n to_o preach_v every_o lordsday_n and_o holiday_n at_o the_o least_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o fast_n as_o of_o lent_n advent_n and_o the_o like_a qvotidie_fw-la well_fw-mi saltem_fw-la triâus_fw-la in_o hebdomade_fw-la diebus_n to_o preach_v every_o day_n or_o at_o least_o three_o day_n every_o week_n and_o at_o other_o time_n also_o as_o often_o as_o opportunity_n will_v permit_v and_o to_o catechise_v the_o people_n beside_o if_o this_o popish_a council_n than_o prescribe_v all_o bishop_n and_o minister_n whatsoever_o thus_o constant_o and_o daily_o to_o preach_v god_n word_n especial_o on_o lords-daye_n holiday_n and_o fasting-day_n without_o intermission_n our_o lordly_a lazy_a loiter_v prelate_n who_o will_v neither_o thus_o preach_v themselves_o and_o prohibit_v other_o to_o preach_v thus_o frequent_o and_o daily_o on_o these_o season_n or_o in_o any_o infect_a city_n on_o our_o solemn_a fasting-day_n be_v certain_o not_o only_a far_o worse_a than_o these_o trent_n prelate_n but_o even_o as_o bad_a or_o worse_o than_o the_o very_a devil_n himself_o as_o bishop_n latimer_n prove_v at_o large_a in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o plough_n which_o i_o will_v wish_v they_o serious_o to_o peruse_v yea_o they_o be_v mere_a rebel_n traitor_n and_o enemy_n to_o god_n his_o church_n religion_n and_o the_o people_n soul_n and_o can_v they_o then_o be_v ever_o true_a loyal_a or_o faithful_a to_o their_o prince_n no_o very_o not_o to_o mention_v all_o the_o bishop_n conspiracy_n rebellion_n and_o treason_n of_o our_o own_o or_o foreign_a prelate_n against_o their_o sovereign_n in_o all_o age_n enough_o to_o fill_v a_o volume_n as_o large_a as_o baronius_n his_o annal_n i_o shall_v instance_n only_o in_o three_o late_a example_n anno_fw-la 1536._o christian_n the_o 3._o king_n of_o denmark_n our_o king_n charles_n his_o great_a grandfather_n by_o the_o mother_n side_n imprison_v all_o the_o seven_o bishop_n of_o denmark_n for_o their_o several_a treason_n rebellion_n conspiracy_n and_o insurrection_n against_o he_o the_o kingdom_n and_o christian_a religion_n and_o for_o usurp_a regal_a authority_n with_o 434._o the_o rule_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o themselves_o alone_o and_o publish_v edict_n in_o their_o own_o name_n as_o the_o senate_n of_o that_o realm_n as_o our_o prelate_n do_v now_o in_o their_o visitation_n &_o consistory_n against_o the_o minister_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n
have_v be_v insert_v p._n 123._o l._n 27._o after_o mistake_v not_o i_o shall_v close_v up_o this_o concern_v the_o power_n and_o right_n of_o ordination_n with_o these_o ensue_a authority_n and_o memorable_a example_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1389._o the_o lollard_n wiclifs-disciple_n as_o 374._o walsingham_n record_v win_v very_o many_o to_o their_o sect_n grow_v so_o audacious_a that_o their_o presbyter_n like_o bishop_n create_v and_o ordain_v new_a presbyter_n affirm_v that_o every_o priest_n have_v receive_v as_o much_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v and_o to_o minister_v other_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n as_o the_o pope_n himself_o give_v or_o can_v give_v this_o power_n of_o ordination_n they_o exercise_v in_o the_o diocese_n of_o salisbury_n and_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o think_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v lawful_a to_o they_o presume_v to_o celebrate_v mass_n and_o fear_v not_o to_o handle_v divine_a thing_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n this_o wickedness_n write_v he_o be_v discover_v by_o a_o certain_a man_n ordain_v a_o minister_n by_o they_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n at_o his_o manor_n of_o sun_v by_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o lollard_n and_o wiclenist_n the_o prctestants_n of_o that_o age_n believe_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v as_o much_o to_o presbyter_n by_o god_n law_n as_o to_o bishop_n that_o one_o of_o they_o might_n as_o well_o as_o lawful_o ordain_v minister_n as_o the_o other_o and_o 1889._o that_o as_o they_o may_v lawful_o preach_v the_o gospel_n without_o the_o bishop_n licence_n first_o prescribe_v by_o the_o forge_a statute_n of_o 2._o h_o 5._o c._n 15._o make_v only_o by_o the_o bishop_n without_o the_o commons_o consent_n to_o suppress_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o likewise_o ordain_v minister_n without_o it_o and_o that_o minister_n ordain_v only_o by_o presbyter_n without_o a_o bishop_n privity_n or_o assistance_n be_v lawful_a minister_n and_o may_v lawful_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n discharge_v all_o ministerial_a office_n this_o be_v not_o only_o their_o receive_a doctrine_n but_o their_o practice_n too_o i_o find_v moreover_o that_o b_o janruay_v 20._o 1542._o nicholas_n amsdorffius_fw-la a_o noble_a and_o learned_a unmarried_a man_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o newbury_n by_o martin_n luther_n doctor_n nicholas_n medler_n pastor_n of_o newbury_n george_n spalatine_n of_o aldenburge_n and_o wolffgaugus_n steinius_n of_o lucopeira_n join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o ordination_n luâher_o afterward_o public_o 456._o maintain_v to_o be_v lawful_a in_o a_o print_a treatise_n loe_o here_o we_o have_v presbyter_n not_o only_o ordain_v a_o presbyter_n but_o a_o bishop_n if_o therefore_o the_o prelate_n paradox_n be_v true_a that_o he_o that_o ordayens_n be_v great_a in_o jursdiction_n and_o degree_n than_o he_o that_o be_v ordain_v it_o will_v hence_o inevitable_o follow_v that_o these_o presbyter_n and_o those_o who_o ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n degree_n and_o order_n then_o bishop_n and_o then_o farewell_n their_o pretend_a hierarchy_n 434._o anno_fw-la dom._n 1537._o christian_n the_o 3_o king_n of_o denmark_n remove_v and_o suppress_v by_o a_o public_a edict_n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o their_o intolerable_a treason_n and_o rebellion_n abolish_n their_o lordly_a bishopric_n as_o contrary_a to_o our_o saviour_n institution_n the_o mean_n that_o make_v they_o idle_a proud_a ambitious_a unpreach_a prelate_n and_o seditious_a treacherous_a rebel_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o 7._o bishop_n of_o denmark_n he_o institute_v 7._o superintendent_o to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n give_v order_n to_o other_o and_o execute_v all_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n which_o 7._o superintendent_o august_n 26._o 1537._o receive_v their_o ordination_n from_o john_n bugenbagius_n a_o protestant_a minister_n in_o the_o cathedral_n of_o hafnia_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n and_o senate_n of_o denmark_n loe_o here_o all_o bishop_n cashier_v as_o false_a rebellious_a ttaytor_n to_o their_o sovereign_n as_o they_o have_v bishop_n ever_o be_v in_o all_o state_n and_o age_n there_o have_v be_v more_o notorious_a traitor_n rebel_n and_o conspirator_n of_o bishop_n then_o of_o all_o other_o rank_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n as_o i_o be_o able_a to_o make_v good_a as_o contrary_a to_o divine_a institution_n and_o so_o not_o jure_v divins_n as_o they_o now_o boast_v and_o superintendent_o ordain_v by_o a_o mere_a presbyter_n in_o their_o steed_n to_o confer_v order_n unto_o other_o in_o all_o the_o danish_a church_n in_o 17._o the_o begin_n of_o reformation_n in_o germany_n and_o other_o place_n luther_n and_o other_o minister_n usual_o ordain_v deacon_n and_o minister_n and_o set_v out_o book_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o ordination_n without_o any_o bishop_n assistance_n which_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v practise_v by_o minister_n in_o all_o reform_a church_n which_o have_v abandon_v bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v and_o make_v themselves_o as_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n patrick_n adamson_n archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrew_n in_o scotland_n in_o 55._o his_o recantation_n public_o make_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n april_n 8._o 1591._o confess_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n omni_fw-la authoritate_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la destituitur_fw-la et_fw-la solopolitico_fw-la hominum_fw-la commento_fw-la fundatur_fw-la be_v destitute_a of_o all_o authority_n from_o god_n word_n and_o only_o found_v in_o the_o politic_a figment_n of_o man_n out_o of_o which_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o antichrist_n have_v spring_v and_o that_o it_o be_v worthy_o to_o be_v condemn_v because_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o presbytery_n penes_fw-la quem_fw-la est_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la et_fw-la inspectio_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o visitationibus_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o ordinationibus_fw-la which_o have_v the_o jurisdiction_n and_o inspection_n both_o in_o visitation_n and_o in_o ordination_n will_v perform_v all_o these_o thing_n with_o great_a authority_n piety_n and_o zeal_n than_o any_o bishop_n whatsoever_o whosecare_n be_v for_o the_o most_o partintent_a not_o upon_o god_n or_o his_o function_n but_o the_o world_n which_o he_o especial_o serve_v a_o fatal_a blow_n to_o our_o prelate_n hierarchy_n for_o if_o lord_n bishop_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o they_o be_v lord_n bishop_n neither_o can_v do_v or_o ought_v they_o to_o confer_v order_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n but_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o if_o so_o as_o be_v most_o certain_a then_o this_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v not_o at_o all_o to_o bishop_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n but_o only_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o every_o minister_n as_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n have_v as_o much_o divine_a right_n and_o authority_n to_o give_v order_n as_o any_o bishop_n whatsoever_o the_o true_a reason_n why_o ancient_o among_o the_o papist_n as_o rubrica_fw-la durandus_fw-la confess_v &_o now_o too_o as_o the_o rhemists_n witness_n and_o 35._o even_o in_o our_o own_o english_a church_n among_o we_o at_o this_o day_n minister_n ought_v to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n neither_o can_v our_o bishop_n ordain_v any_o one_o a_o minister_n unless_o three_o or_o four_o minister_n at_o least_o join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o ordination_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n this_o be_v a_o apparent_a truth_n i_o shall_v hence_o from_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n prove_v presbyter_n superior_a and_o great_a than_o bishop_n in_o jurisdiction_n dignity_n and_o degree_n those_o say_v they_o to_o who_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v by_o divine_a right_n be_v great_a in_o jurisdiction_n dignity_n and_o degree_n than_o those_o who_o have_v not_o this_o power_n and_o the_o ordayner_n be_v high_a superior_a in_o all_o these_o than_o the_o ordain_v but_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v jure_fw-la divine_a only_o to_o presbyter_n as_o presbyter_n not_o to_o lord_n bishop_n and_o to_z lord_n bishop_n themselves_o not_o as_o bishop_n but_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n when_o they_o ordain_v in_o a_o lawful_a manner_n do_v it_o only_o as_o presbyter_n not_o as_o bishop_n therefore_o presbyter_n be_v superior_a to_o bishop_n in_o jurisdiction_n order_n and_o degree_n and_o bishop_n themselves_o far_o great_a in_o all_o these_o as_o they_o be_v presbyter_n a_o office_n of_o divine_a invention_n then_o as_o they_o be_v lordly_a prelate_n or_o diocesan_n bishop_n a_o mere_a humane_a institution_n thus_o be_v our_o great_a lord_n bishop_n who_o sabath_n vaunt_v of_o the_o weakness_n of_o puritan_n principle_n whereas_o their_o episcopal_a be_v far_o more_o feeble_a and_o absurd_a wound_v to_o death_n with_o their_o own_o
of_o the_o homily_n against_o disobedience_n &_o wilful_a rebellion_n fox_n act_n and_o monument_n throughout_o catalogue_n testium_fw-la veritatis_fw-la veritatis_fw-la com._n in_o phil_n 1._o 1._o in_o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o in_o 1._o tim_n 3_o &_o 4._o 4._o de_fw-fr quest._n armenorum_n l._n 11._o c._n 1._o to_o 8._o 8._o balaeus_n cent._n 8._o c._n 19_o 19_o fox_n act_v monument_n p._n 9_o 2._o 973._o 973._o on_o the_o 8_o commandment_n commandment_n defence_n of_o the_o apology_n part_n 2._o c._n 3._o divis_n 1._o 5._o p._n 85._o 99_o 100_o 101._o etc._n etc._n 9_o divis_n 1_o p._n 196._o 202._o 202._o poor_a man_n library_n part_n 1._o f._n 95._o 96._o 96._o exposit_n on_o aggius_n vers_fw-la 1._o &_o 2._o 2._o against_o cartwright_n p._n 389._o 389._o of_o the_o prince_n supremacy_n p._n 359._o 359._o maith_n 6._o 24._o lu._n 16._o 13._o 1._o john_n 2._o 15._o 16._o 16._o see_v chownaeus_n collect_v theolog._n and_o shelford_n his_o 5._o treatise_n treatise_n pag._n 2._o 43._o 44._o 44._o see_v henry_n stalbridge_n his_o exhortatory_n epistle_n william_n wraghton_n his_o hunt_v of_o the_o romish_a fox_n roderick_n mors_fw-la his_o complaint_n c._n 23._o master_n tyndal_n his_o obedience_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o practise_v of_o popish_a prelate_n fox_n act_n and_o monument_n paâ_n 414._o 514._o 516._o 518._o master_n whethenhall_n his_o discourse_n of_o the_o corruption_n now_o in_o question_n with_o other_o other_o matth._n 7._o 26._o 27._o 27._o see_v sir_n john_n davis_n his_o irish_a report_n f._n 97._o 98_o a_o excellent_a passage_n to_o this_o purpose_n q_o math._n 7._o 27._o 27._o doctor_n barnes_n article_n artic._n 8._o p._n 211._o master_n tyndal_n practise_v of_o popish_a prelate_n p._n 342_o 343._o etc._n etc._n and_o obedience_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n man_n 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 17._o what_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v p._n 266._o u_fw-la prov._n 16._o 18._o 18._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 5._o 5._o psa_fw-la 119._o 119._o 119._o see_v thomas_n beââ_n on_o his_o supplication_n vol._n 3._o of_o his_o work_n in_o folio_n f._n 21._o to_o 25._o a_o most_o excellent_a passage_n to_o this_o purpose_n suitable_a to_o our_o time_n time_n magna_fw-la charta_fw-la c._n 29._o the_o petition_n of_o right_n 3._o caroli_n and_o other_o statute_n in_o ractall_n accusation_n accusation_n 1._o cor._n 1._o 27._o 28._o 29._o 29._o in_o master_n thomas_n brewer_n doctor_n bastweeke_n and_o sundry_a other_o case_n case_n an._n melvini_n patricij_fw-la adamsoni_fw-la palinodia_fw-la print_v an._n 1630._o 1630._o see_v master_n tyndals_n obedience_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n the_o holy_a practice_n of_o popish_a prelate_n prelate_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 2._o 3._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 1._o to_o 5_o tit_n 1._o &_o 2._o 1_o pet._n ãâã_d 2._o 3._o 3._o 31._o h_o s._n c_o 9_o 37._o h._n 8_o c._n 17._o 1._o e_o 6._o c._n ãâã_d &_o all_o the_o bishop_n patent_n for_o their_o consecration_n and_o cong_n cong_n not_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n who_o can_v make_v no_o chancellor_n vicar_n general_n commissary_n or_o official_o unless_o the_o king_n by_o his_o special_a patent_n give_v they_o power_n so_o to_o do_v in_o express_a word_n as_o these_o statute_n evidence_n and_o the_o bishop_n patent_n in_o edward_n the_o 6._o reign_v reign_v matth._n 22._o 20._o 21._o sir_n john_n davis_n his_o irish_a report_n p._n 97._o 98._o 98._o 26._o h._n 8._o c._n 1._o 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 1._o e._n 6._o c._n 2._o 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 5._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 1._o in_o case_n they_o have_v ãâ¦ã_z character_n or_o commission_n under_o his_o majesty_n seal_n which_o all_o of_o they_o now_o want_v and_o so_o be_v mere_a usurper_n on_o his_o majesty_n crown_n and_o ecclesiastical_a prerogative_n in_o keep_v confistory_n visitation_n and_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n in_o their_o own_o name_n with_o patent_n or_o commission_n from_o the_o king_n king_n sunday_n no_o sabath_n p._n ãâã_d &_o 44._o 44._o w._n bray_n bray_n see_v antiquit_n eccles_n brit._n bodwines_n conversion_n of_o brittany_n with_o other_o who_o write_v of_o king_n âucius_fw-la and_o speed_v history_n book_n 6._o c._n 9_o p._n 73._o to_o 82._o 82._o defence_n of_o the_o apolog._n part_n 5._o c._n 1._o divis_n 1._o artic._n 1._o divis_n 24._o 24._o act_n and_o monum_fw-la f._n 2._o p._n 9â_n to_o 120._o 120._o speed_v hist._n l._n 6._o c._n 9_o 9_o page_n 43._o 43._o see_v quest._n 1._o object_n 6._o answer_v 2._o and_o most_o of_o our_o learned_a writer_n who_o have_v affirm_v that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n much_o less_o bishop_n there_o upon_o such_o ground_n as_o this_o doctor_n can_v answer_v answer_v epiphanius_n contr._n haereses_fw-la l._n 1._o haer._n 27._o col_fw-fr 88_o 89._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist._n l._n 3._o c._n 21._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o 4._o 5._o write_v that_o both_o of_o they_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o once_o and_o not_o peter_n the_o sole_a bishop_n and_o eusebius_n write_v paul_n in_o the_o first_o place_n before_o peter_n peter_n see_v euseb_n s_o 3._o c._n 10._o 11._o or_o soâr_o schol._n eccl._n hist._n l._n 7._o c._n 3_o 3_o 28._o h._n 8._o c._n 10._o 1._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 1._o see_v rastall_a tit._n rome_n rome_n oratio_fw-la ad_fw-la ãâã_d 50._o episcopus_fw-la in_o his_o life_n before_o his_o work_n socrates_n eccles_n hist_n l._n 5._o c_o 7._o p_o isidor_n pe'usiotae_n epist_n l._n 3_o epist_n 223._o 223._o nicephorus_n eccles_n hist._n l._n 10._o c_o 11._o 11._o socr._n scholast_n l._n 4._o c._n 18._o in_o the_o greek_a 23._o niceph._n eccles_n hist._n l._n 11._o c._n 37._o petrus_n blesensis_n epist_n 23._o 23._o socrates_n eccl._n hist_n l._n 4._o c._n 18._o niceph._n l._n 11._o c._n 37._o 37._o nicephori_n gregorae_fw-la hist_n rom._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o 2._o f._n 9_o cent._n magd._n 13._o col._n 982._o 982._o cent._n magd._n 10._o col._n 599._o 599._o cent._n magd._n 6._o col._n 644._o 644._o niceph._n greg._n hist_o rom._n l._n 4._o 2._o 1._o f._n 11._o 13_o 14._o l._n 5._o fol._n 16._o l._n 6._o f._n 20._o 21._o 22._o 24._o l._n 7._o f._n 29._o l._n 8_o f._n 31._o cent._n magd._n 8._o col._n 669._o 672._o cent._n 11._o col._n 516._o 518._o cent._n 12._o col._n 1384._o cent._n 13._o col._n 932._o 983._o 983._o vincentius_n spec._n hist._n l._n 24._o c._n 25._o cent._n magd._n 7._o col._n 502._o 507._o 508._o cent._n 8._o col._n 763._o 786._o cent._n 10._o col._n 586._o cent._n 11._o col._n 515._o 576._o cent._n 12._o col._n 1387._o 1458._o 1468._o 1484._o 1486._o 1491._o 1519._o 1530._o 1544._o cent._n 13._o col._n 1042._o 1052._o 1057._o 1062._o 1078._o 1092._o 1093._o 1094._o 1102._o 1146._o 1146._o godwine_n catalogue_n of_o bishop_n london_n 1615._o p._n 70._o 113._o 118._o 120._o 188._o 192._o 219._o 305._o 306._o 313._o 318._o 323._o 336._o 353._o 397._o 413._o 414._o 437._o 438_o 446._o 447._o 456._o 477._o 487._o 504._o 508._o 532._o 536._o 543._o 559._o 565._o 567._o 581._o 596._o 629._o 631._o 632._o 635._o 636._o 654._o 655._o 675._o 676._o 676._o fox_n act_n and_o monument_n p._n 1578._o his_o 2._o 3._o and_o 4._o sermon_n before_o king_n edward_n edward_n epist._n 2._o 83._o 85._o in_o tit._n 1._o phil._n 1._o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 3._o in_o eph._n 4._o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 3._o rom._n 1._o in_o phil._n hom._n 11._o in_o 1._o tim_n 3_o hom._n 2._o in_o tit._n 1._o 1._o ep._n 19_o 83._o 85._o quaest._n ex_fw-la utroque_fw-la impert_v 100_o 101._o 101._o in_o phil._n 1._o 1._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o 1._o tim._n c._n 3._o &_o 4._o acts._n 15._o &_o 20._o 17._o 28._o 28._o ori._n l._n 7._o c._n 12._o l._n 8._o c._n 5._o de_fw-fr ecclesiast_n officiis_n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o 7._o de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_fw-la l._n 2._o c_o 35._o 36._o 36._o in_o acts._n 15._o &_o 20._o 1._o tim_n 3_o phil._n 1._o 1._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 7_o 7_o distinct_a 80._o 93._o causa_fw-la 2._o qu._n 7._o 7._o decretal_a pars_fw-la 5._o c._n 58._o 59_o 72._o 107._o 143._o 144._o 144._o sent._n l._n 4._o distinct._n 24._o 24._o in_o phil._n 1._o tit._n 1._o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 3._o amalarius_fw-la fortunatus_n de_fw-fr eccles_n officiis_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 13._o basilius_n magnus_n in_o c._n 3._o isayae_n nizianzen_n orat._n 9_o 13._o 15._o 21._o 28._o 28._o quote_v by_o gersonius_fw-la bucerus_n the_o petition_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n master_n parker_n &_o doctor_n bastweek_n book_n book_n matth._n 20_o 20_o to_o 29_o marc._n 10_o 35_o to_o 48_o lu._n 22._o 23_o to_o 28._o 28._o 1._o pet._n 5_o 1_o to_z 6_o acts._n 14_o 23_o c._n 20_o 17_o 28_o phil._n l_o 1_o tit._n 1_o 5_o 7._o 1._o tim._n 3_o etc._n etc._n c._n 5_o 17_o c._n 4._o 14_o jam._n 5_o 14_o m_o see_v bp._n jewel_n defence_n of_o the_o apology_n part_n 2_o c._n
ãâ¦ã_z 4._o 3._o 16._o 1._o sam._n 10._o 1._o c._n 26_o 6._o 11._o ps_n 92._o 10._o 1._o king_n 1._o 39_o c._n 19_o 15._o 16._o 16._o bishop_n jewel_n reply_v to_o harding_n article_n 4._o divis_n 5._o 6._o 18._o richaâdus_fw-la armachanuâ_n de_fw-fr quaest_n armenorum_n l._n 11._o c._n 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o 5._o 6._o 7._o 7._o contr._n haer_fw-mi l._n 3._o haer_fw-mi 75._o 75._o anselmuâ_n haymo_n rabanus_n primasius_n calvin_n deering_n and_o david_n dickson_n on_o this_o text_n text_n heb._n 4._o 14._o 15._o c_o 8._o 1._o c._n 9_o 11._o c._n 10._o 21._o 21._o heb._n 13._o 20._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 4._o 4._o ephes_n 4._o 10._o 11._o 1._o cor._n 12._o 28._o math._n 9_o 37._o 38._o 38._o acts._n 1._o 25_o 26._o gal._n 2._o 8._o 9_o 11._o 14_o 1._o cor._n 12._o 28._o 29._o 2._o cor._n 11._o 5_o 5_o canon_n 33._o 35._o an._n 1603._o 1603._o canon_n 31._o 31._o 1._o tim._n 4._o 6._o 2._o tim._n 4._o 5._o 1._o thes_n 3._o 2._o 2._o 3._o ed._n 6._o c._n 12._o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 1._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist_n l._n 3._o c._n 39_o p._n 55._o 55._o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la tom._n 1._o p._n 96._o 96._o apolog._n c._n 39_o tom._n 1._o p._n 692._o 693._o 694._o 694._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 16._o 16._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist_n l._n 5._o c._n 23._o 23._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 20._o 20._o ibid._n e._n 26._o 26._o eusebius_n eccles_n hist_n l._n 7._o c._n 8._o 8._o see_v his_o life_n before_o his_o work_n work_n aretius_n theolog_fw-la problemata_fw-la locus_fw-la 62._o de_fw-fr officiis_n eccl._n sex_n 9_o p._n 184._o 186_o chenmitius_n examen_fw-la concilij_fw-la tridentini_n pars_fw-la 2._o de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la c._n 4._o p._n 223._o 224._o 224._o iliad_n 1._o 10_o *_o de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constantini_n l._n 4._o c._n 24._o 24._o so_o be_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d use_v by_o basil_n epist_n 52._o not_o to_o ride_v in_o visitation_n like_o a_o lordly_a prelate_n but_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o the_o church_n &_o to_o be_v careful_a for_o it_o as_o bishop_n jewel_n witness_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 2._o c._n 3._o divis_n 5._o p._n 107._o 107._o enarratio_fw-la in_o psal_n 126._o tom._n 8._o pars_fw-la 2._o p._n 726._o 727._o 727._o let_v our_o great_a prelate_n mark_v this_o well_o well_o de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 19_o c._n 19_o tom._n pars_fw-la 2._o p._n 516._o 516._o note_v this_o this_o fol._n 116._o act._n 20._o 20._o see_v fulke_n and_o cartwright_n ibid._n m._n m._n bishop_n jewel_n defence_n of_o the_o apology_n part_n 2._o c._n 3._o divis_n 5._o p._n 107._o 107._o marsilius_n patavinus_n defence_n pacis_fw-la pars_fw-la 2._o c._n 15._o 16._o richardus_fw-la armachanus_fw-la resp_n ad_fw-la quaest_n armenorum_n l._n 11._o c._n 1._o to_o 8._o fox_n act_n and_o monum_fw-la p._n 1009._o 1116._o 1465._o 1465._o bishop_n jewel_n defence_n of_o the_o apol._n part_n 2._o c._n 3._o divis_n 7._o part_n 111._o thomas_n beacon_n his_o catechism_n vol._n 1._o f._n 499._o 500_o chrysost_n opus_fw-la imperf_n in_o matth._n hom._n 3._o &_o 43._o ambros_n de_fw-fr dign_a sacerd_v c._n 4._o 4._o august_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la l._n 19_o c._n 19_o hier._n ambr._n sedul_a primus_fw-la haymo_n rab._n maur._n chrysostom_n theodoret._n theophylact._n oecumenius_n anselmus_fw-la beda_n in_o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o 2._o bernard_n de_fw-fr consid_n ad_fw-la eugen._n 2._o &_o 3_o 3_o math._n 10._o 1._o to_o 16._o mark_n 6._o 7._o to_o 12._o luke_n 9_o 1._o to_o 6._o compare_v with_o luke_n 10._o 1._o to_o 21._o 21._o clemens_n epist_n apud_fw-la surium_n tom._n 1._o p._n 141._o and_o other_o who_o have_v since_o follow_v this_o forgery_n of_o he_o he_o l._n 3._o c._n 4._o eccl._n hist._n hist._n see_v mercator_n atlas_n minor_n p._n 812._o 812._o math._n 7._o 26._o 27._o 27._o the_o instit_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n ch._n os_fw-la order_n and_o thomas_n beacon_n catech._n f._n 499._o 500_o 500_o see_v the_o fastbooke_n then_o print_v â¡_o joel._n 2._o 14_o to_o 20._o 4._o 2._o 1._o to_o 28._o isaiah_n 22._o 12._o 13._o 14._o 2_o chron._n 6._o to_o 24._o to_o 40._o c._n 7._o 13._o 14._o 15_o zeph._n 2._o 1._o 2._o 3._o jonah_n 3._o 5_o to_o 10._o ezech._n 9_o 4._o mal._n 3._o 16._o 17._o ezra_n 9_o &_o 10._o 10._o see_v bishop_n wren_n injunction_n for_o norwich_n and_o his_o visition_n artiles_n and_o yet_o this_o can._n bind_v they_o not_o strict_o to_o any_o form_n as_o the_o word_n or_o to_o this_o effect_n declare_v declare_v jer._n 7._o 16._o c._n 11._o 14._o c._n 14._o 11._o c._n 29._o 7._o c._n 37_o 3._o 4._o c._n 42._o 2._o 4._o 20._o joel._n 2._o 17._o 17._o isaiah_n 22._o 12._o 13._o 13._o ps_n 119._o 21._o judg._n 5._o 23._o mal._n 2._o 2._o c._n 3._o 9_o 1._o cor._n 16._o 22._o 22._o luke_n 18._o to_o 3._o rev._n 6._o 9_o 10._o psal_n 28._o 4._o 5._o 5._o 1._o sam._n 4._o 18._o 18._o fox_n act_n &_o monument_n london_n 1610._o p._n 502._o 502._o platina_n onuphrius_n bale_n stella_n volateranus_fw-la celestin_n 5_o &_o bonifac._n 8._o 8._o georgius_n pontan_n bohemiae_n piae_fw-la l._n 3._o p._n 36._o godwin_n catalogue_n of_o bps._n p._n 212._o 216_o 460._o 564._o 585._o matthew_n westminst_n an._n 932._o p._n 361._o newbrigens_n l._n 1._o c._n 14._o 14._o de_fw-fr sacram._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o l._n 5._o c._n 1._o 1._o tract_n 9_o 16._o 20._o 21._o 25._o 27._o 29._o 35._o 37._o in_o joan._n joan._n hom._n 5._o 6._o 8._o 9_o 10._o 13._o 28._o in_o genes_n genes_n catech._n orat._n 7._o &_o 14._o &_o catech._n mystag_n 14._o 14._o socr._n eccl._n hist._n l._n 7._o c._n 2._o 2._o fox_n acts._n &_o monum_fw-la p._n 1366._o 1366._o fox_n act_n &_o monument_n p._n 15._o 59_o see_v p._n 1115._o 1153._o 1457._o 1579._o 1696._o 1696._o see_v his_o visitation_n article_n and_o injunction_n for_o norwich_n â _o before_o the_o 39_o article_n &_o of_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o last_o parliament_n p._n 20._o 21._o 22._o 42._o 43._o 43._o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la c._n 29_o 25._o hen._n 8._o c._n 19_o 21._o 27_o h._n 8._o c._n 15._o 37._o h._n 8._o c._n 17._o 1._o ed._n 6._o c._n 2._o 1._o eliz_n c._n 12_o 5._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 12._o eliz._n c._n 13._o 8._o eliz._n c._n 1._o 1._o inconformity_n therefore_o it_o notâ_n the_o thing_n the_o bishop_n aim_n at_o but_o the_o suppression_n of_o the_o gosple_n gosple_n 1._o cor._n 9_o 16._o 16._o isaiah_n 56._o 7._o jer._n 7._o 11._o math._n 21._o 13._o mark_n 11._o 17._o luke_n 19_o 46._o see_v dr._n boys_n postill_n on_o the_o first_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphany_n p._n 132_o and_o on_o the_o 10._o sunday_n after_o trinity_n p._n 446._o 447._o 447._o to_o wit_n for_o affirm_v that_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o council_n will_v be_v hearty_o glad_a if_o all_o those_o that_o go_v over_o to_o new-england_n be_v drown_v in_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n a_o most_o trayter_o &_o seditious_a speech_n as_o of_o his_o majesty_n &_o the_o state_n delight_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o his_o faithful_a subject_n who_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n and_o duty_n to_o protect_v and_o preserve_v preserve_v of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o prayer_n prayer_n dr._n boy_n postill_a on_o the_o 10._o sunday_n after_o trinity_n p._n 448._o 448._o hom._n of_o the_o repair_n &_o keep_v clean_o of_o church_n p._n 80_o of_o the_o time_n &_o place_n of_o prayer_n p._n 131._o 131._o hom._n of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o church_n of_o repair_v church_n &_o of_o the_o time_n &_o place_n of_o prayer_n prayer_n hom._n 1._o 2._o 3._o 5._o &_o 10._o 29._o in_o gen._n hom._n 5._o in_o math._n math._n defence_n of_o the_o apology_n part_n 5._o c._n 3._o divis_n 4._o p._n 449._o 450_o 450_o o_o blasphemy_n blasphemy_n see_v doctor_n james_n his_o treatise_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o prelate_n of_o rome_n part_n 2._o 3._o 4._o 4._o see_v the_o homily_n of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o prayer_n of_o keep_v clean_o of_o church_n church_n jer._n 23._o 13_o 14._o 15._o 15._o gen._n 18._o &_o 19_o see_v 2._o chron._n 36._o 15._o 16._o 17._o 17._o fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la 1144._o cent._n magd._n 12._o col_fw-fr 1407._o stella_fw-la stella_fw-la antiq._n eccl._n brit._n p._n 13._o godw._n p._n 53._o 53._o fox_n act_n &_o monument_n p._n 364._o 364._o alberti_fw-la argentinensis_n chron._n an._n 1348._o p._n 147._o 147._o georgius_n pont._n bohemiae_n piae_fw-la l._n 3._o p._n 34._o *_o behold_v constantiensis_n ad_fw-la herman_n appendix_n an._n 1085._o p._n 357._o *_o thomas_n
in_o the_o three_o person_n three_o the_o word_n be_v write_a etc._n etc._n in_o the_o preter_fw-la imperfect_a tense_n show_v this_o postscript_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a addition_n of_o some_o scribe_n or_o expositor_n some_o good_a space_n after_o the_o epistle_n write_v not_o of_o paul_n himself_o at_o the_o time_n when_o he_o write_v it_o all_o the_o postscript_n of_o his_o other_o epistle_n appear_v manifest_o not_o to_o be_v he_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n four_o it_o be_v here_o call_v the_o second_o epistle_n unto_o timotheus_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o first_o and_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o he_o write_v many_o year_n before_o it_o be_v likewise_o style_v in_o the_o postsript_n of_o it_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o second_o as_o therefore_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v certain_o add_v by_o some_o notary_n after_o the_o second_o epistle_n write_v since_o it_o be_v call_v the_o first_o in_o relation_n to_o it_o so_o no_o doubt_n the_o postscript_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n be_v annex_v to_o it_o after_o the_o first_o epistle_n and_o it_o be_v transcribe_v and_o bind_v up_o together_o by_o the_o same_o party_n that_o add_v the_o postscript_n to_o the_o first_o the_o postscript_n still_v they_o thus_o the_o 1._o and_o 2._o in_o regard_n of_o their_o mutual_a relation_n one_o to_o the_o other_o after_o they_o be_v both_o conjoin_v and_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o paul_n epistle_n digest_v into_o that_o order_n and_o method_n wherein_o now_o they_o be_v place_v both_o in_o manuscript_n and_o print_a copy_n five_o it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a that_o paul_n will_v make_v such_o a_o postscript_n as_o this_o for_o as_o these_o word_n be_v write_v from_o rome_n when_o paul_n be_v bring_v before_o nero_n the_o 2._o time_n sound_v not_o of_o paul_n language_n but_o some_o other_o so_o the_o second_o epistle_n unto_o timotheus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n savour_v not_o of_o his_o indite_v who_o never_o in_o any_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o he_o or_o other_o style_v he_o a_o bishop_n much_o less_o ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v make_v such_o a_o description_n of_o timothy_n as_o this_o to_o timothy_n himself_o six_o none_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v any_o postscript_n add_v to_o any_o of_o their_o epistle_n it_o be_v likely_a therefore_o that_o paul_n guide_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n add_v none_o to_o all_o or_o any_o of_o he_o but_o that_o they_o prove_v be_v add_v by_o some_o other_o who_o either_o transscribed_a and_o collect_v his_o epistle_n together_o or_o comment_v on_o they_o as_o be_v the_o several_a title_n both_o before_o and_o over_o his_o several_a epistle_n and_o the_o content_n before_o each_o chapter_n both_o in_o manuscript_n and_o print_v copy_n seaventh_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o postscript_n of_o many_o of_o paul_n epistle_n be_v forge_v and_o false_a as_o 499._o m._n perkins_n work_v prove_v they_o and_o that_o the_o postscript_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v not_o only_o after_o the_o second_o pen_v but_o likewise_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n or_o more_o for_o it_o run_v thus_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n be_v write_v from_o laodicea_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a city_n of_o phrygia_n pacatiana_n for_o phrygia_n be_v not_o surname_v pacatiana_n as_o 90._o divers_a affirm_v by_o any_o historian_n and_o geographer_n till_o at_o least_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n from_o one_o pacatius_n a_o general_n as_o be_v conceive_v who_o subdue_v it_o since_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o so_o style_v till_o ãâã_d hâundred_v year_n after_o christ_n this_o postscript_n must_v needs_o be_v add_v after_o that_o time_n and_o so_o in_o all_o likelihood_n the_o postscript_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n too_o be_v both_o make_v by_o the_o same_o author_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o the_o first_o first_o both_o in_o time_n and_o order_n as_o be_v most_o probable_a neither_o will_v paul_n doubtless_o make_v such_o a_o postscript_n to_o tell_v timothy_n that_o laodicea_n be_v the_o chief_a city_n of_o phrygia_n pacatiana_n it_o be_v so_o near_o to_o ephesus_n and_o as_o well_o know_v to_o timothy_n as_o to_o paul_n who_o as_o 499._o the_o rhemist_n and_o baronius_n confess_v be_v never_o at_o laodicea_n which_o they_o prove_v by_o gal._n 2._o 1._o and_o so_o this_o postscript_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a false_a eight_o this_o postscript_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o very_a preface_n and_o body_n of_o the_o epistle_n write_v no_o doubt_n by_o paul_n which_o as_o it_o express_o style_v timothy_n a_o evangelist_n not_o a_o bishop_n exhort_v he_o to_o make_v full_a proof_n of_o his_o ministry_n not_o of_o his_o bishopric_n c._n 4._o five_o 5._o so_o paul_n therein_o and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n ever_o term_v he_o his_o dear_o belove_a son_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 2._o c._n 2._o 1._o 1._o tim._n 1._o 2._o 18._o a_o man_n of_o god_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 11._o 2._o tim._n 3._o 17._o not_o a_o bishop_n and_o in_o the_o 2._o tim._n 4._o 12._o but_o a_o little_a above_o the_o postscript_n paul_n write_v express_o to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v send_v tychicus_n to_o ephesus_n to_o know_v their_o affair_n comfort_v their_o heart_n and_o make_v know_v to_o they_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v a_o belove_a brother_n and_o faithful_a minister_n in_o the_o lord_n ephes_n 6._o 21._o 22._o and_o neither_o timothy_n his_o curate_n and_o underling_n muchlesse_a his_o successor_n at_o ephesus_n as_o be_v probable_a nine_o this_o postscript_n be_v direct_o contradictory_n to_o many_o fore-alleadged_n scripture_n which_o prove_v timothy_n to_o be_v no_o bishop_n muchlesse_a the_o first_o or_o sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v believe_v see_v acts._n 20._o 28._o ten_o the_o postscript_n itself_o but_o especial_o the_o clause_n of_o it_o ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o ephesian_n whereon_o this_o objection_n be_v ground_v be_v but_o a_o late_a addition_n not_o extant_a in_o any_o of_o the_o father_n work_n who_o have_v commented_a on_o this_o epistle_n except_o occumenius_n who_o live_v 1050._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o first_o in_o who_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o postscript_n be_v find_v nor_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a best_o greek_a latin_a arabic_a english_a or_o other_o copy_n and_o translation_n whither_o manuscript_n or_o print_v therefore_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o counterfeit_v coin_n eleven_o eusebius_n eusebius_n write_v that_o timothy_n be_v report_a to_o be_v not_o that_o he_o very_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n therefore_o this_o postscript_n either_o be_v not_o in_o be_v in_o his_o age_n or_o else_o it_o have_v no_o more_o credit_n than_o a_o bare_a report_n not_o sufficient_a to_o resolve_v that_o timothy_n be_v undoubted_o and_o of_o a_o truth_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n the_o first_o who_o make_v mention_n of_o any_o of_o these_o postscript_n be_v theodoret_n 430._o year_n after_o christ_n who_o perchance_o then_o add_v they_o to_o paul_n epistle_n but_o in_o his_o postscript_n this_o clause_n ordain_v the_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o ephesian_n with_o that_o of_o titus_n ordain_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o cretan_n can_v be_v find_v second_o admit_v this_o postscript_n true_a and_o authentical_a that_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n when_o this_o second_o epistle_n be_v write_v be_v but_o a_o truth_n little_a before_o paul_n death_n yet_o this_o be_v no_o good_a proof_n that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v pen_v be_v some_o 10._o or_o 12._o year_n before_o as_o most_o conjecture_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n that_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n when_o the_o second_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o he_o because_o the_o postscript_n of_o it_o only_o style_v he_o so_o it_o be_v as_o good_a or_o a_o better_a argument_n for_o i_o to_o say_v that_o timothy_n be_v no_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v directd_a to_o he_o because_o neither_o the_o body_n nor_o postscript_n of_o that_o epistle_n nor_o any_o other_o scripture_n whatsoever_o style_v he_o either_o a_o bishop_n or_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n though_o he_o 4._o be_v resident_a at_o ephesus_n when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o he_o 22._o but_o not_o when_o the_o second_o be_v send_v he_o and_o so_o shall_v much_o more_o have_v be_v style_v a_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n and_o postscript_n then_o in_o the_o second_o now_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o papist_n argument_n by_o which_o they_o will_v prove_v timothy_n a_o bishop_n be_v draw_v from_o his_o first_o epistle_n